,=->
^,
"*) '^A,
v"
'"
'*'//auAiNiii\e^
.vtJIDDAfA'
^r
%
-
'^,
1^
J^UI
% ^V }
Li ir"^
3»
^
S
J^'*
International Library of Psychology
Philosophy and Scientific Method
Sex and Repression Savage Society
in
International Library of Psychology
Method
Philosophy and Scientific GENERAL EDITOR: C. K. OGDEN, Philosophical Studies The Misuse of Mind Conflict and Dream* Tractatus Logico-Philosophicus Psychological Types* .
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
Individual Psychology Speculations (Preface by Jacob Epstein) The Psychology of Reasoning* The Philosophy OF " As If " The Nature of Intelligence Telepathy and Clairvoyance The Growth of the Mind The Mentality of Apes . Psychology of Religious Mysticism The Philosophy of Music The Psychology of a Musical Prodigy Principles of Literary Criticism Metaphysical Foundation of Sciences Thought and the Brain* Physique and Character* .
.
.
fry
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
fry
L. L. Thurstone fry R. Tischner
fry
.
.
.
.
.
.
fry I.
.
fry
.
'
.
E. A. Burtt, Ph.D.
.
fry J.
in
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
T. MacCurdy, M.D. honour of Morton Prince F. A. Lange R. G. Gordon, M.D.
.
fry
fry
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
fry
.
.
.
.
W. M. Marston
fry
Bertrand Russell, F.R.S.
.
.
fry
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
byJ.H. Woodger fry Otto Rank
fry
fry
Sir Richard Paget .fry Jean Nicod
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
EiDETic Imagery
The Concentric Method The Foundations of Mathematics The Philosophy of the Unconscious .
.
.
.
. .
. .
. .
fry
P. S. Florence Hamilton Frank Lorimer
E. R.
fry
fry
Foundations of Geometry and Induction
Lodge
.
.
.
R. C.
frv
fry G. Murphy June E. Downey Christine Ladd-Franklin .
.
The Laws of Feeling The Mental Development of the Child .
.
fry
Colour and Colour Theories
The Trauma of Birth The Statistical Method in Economics The Art of Interrogation The Growth of Reason Human Speech
Markey
F.
K. C. Hsiao .fry Liang Chi-Chao
.
........ .... ......... ....... ........ .
Rabaud
Bogoslovskv
fry J. fry
....... .....
Political Pluralism History of Chinese Political Thought Integrative Psychology* The Analysis of Matter Plato's Theory of Ethics Historical Introduction to Modern Psychology Creative Imagination
B. B.
.
.
.
E.
von UexkOll Scott Buchanan
fry J. fry
fry .
fry
.
W. Morton Wheeler
fry
.
.
.
Charles Fox fry J. Piaget
Malinowski, D.Sc. fry P. Masson-Oursel fry F. Alverdes
B.
fry
.
The Technique of Controversy The Symbolic Process
fry H. Pi6ron Ernst Kretschmer .
.
.
fry
<
Personality* Educational Psychology Language and Thought of the Child Sex and Repression in Savage Society* Comparative Philosophy SocLAL Life in the Animal World How Animals Find their Way About The Social Insects Theoretical Biology .
.
G. Revesz A. Richards
fry
.
...... ..... ... ^ ....... ...... ...... .
Psychology of Emotion Problems of Personality The History of Materialism
Biological Principles
H. Leub." Pole, F.R.S.
W.
fry
W. Kohler
fry
fry J.
.
.
K. Koffka
fry
.
.
.
.
.
Alfred Adler T. E. Hulme
fry
Eugenio Rignano fry H. Vaihinger
fry
.
.
.
Cambridge)
College,
by G. E. Moore, Litt.D. by Karin Stephen 6y W. H. R. Rivers, F.R.S. fry L. Wittgenstein fry C. G. Jung, M.D. fry C. D. Broad, Litt.D. C. K. Ogden and I. A. Richards .
.
.
Possibility
.
....... .....
Thought* The Meaning of Meaning Scientific
.
M.A. {Magdalene
fry
F.
fry
fry
Paulhan
K. Buhler
E. R. Jaensch
M. Laignel-Lavastine fry
.
F. P.
Ramsey
fry E. von H.mitmann Outlines of Greek Philosophy fry E. Zeller The Psychology of Children's Drawings fry Helga Eng Invention and the Unconscious fry J. M. Montmasson The Theory of Legislation by Jeremy Bentham The Social Life of Monkeys fry S. Zuckerman The Development of the Sexual Impulses . fry R. E. Money-Kyrle Constitution Types in Delinquency fry W. A. Willemse The Sciences of Man in the Making fry E. A. Kirkpatrick Ethical Relativity fry E. A. Westermarck The Gestalt Theory fry Bruno Petermann fry C. Daly King The Psychology of Consciousness fry K. Vossler The Spirit of Language The Dynamics of Education .fry Hilda Taba The Nature of Learning fry George Humphrey -fry Wen Kwei Liao The Individual and the Commxjnity Crime, Law, and Social Science , .fry Jerome Michael and M. J. Adler Dynamic Social Research fry J. J. Hader and E. C. Lindeman fry S. M. Stinchfield Speech Disorders fry Max Black The Nature of Mathematics The Neural Basis of Thought fry G. G. Campion and Sir Grafton Elliot Smith Law and the Social Sciences fry Huntington Cairns fry F. M. Cornford Plato's Theory of Knowledge fry M. M. Lewis Infant Speech .
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
....... ...... .
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
..... .
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
.
â&#x20AC;˘ Asterisks denote that other books by the same author are included in the Series.
Sex and Repression in Savage Society
By
BRONISLAW MALINOWSKI
m LONDON
KEGAN PAUL, TRENCH, TRUBNER & BROADWAY HOUSE,
Co.,
68-74 CARTER LANE, E.C.4
1937
Ltd.
First published 1927
Reprinted
...
1
937
Made and Printed in Great Britain by CO. LTD. PERCY LUND, HUMPHKIES 12 Bedford Square, London, W.C.i and at Bradford
&
TO MY FRIEND
PAUL KHUNER New
Guinea, 1914, Australia, 1918,
South Tyrol, 1922.
PREFACE 'T^HE
had within
doctrine of psycho-analysis has
the last ten years a truly meteoric rise in popular favour.
It
has exercised a growing influence over
contemporary fact been for
literature, science,
and
art.
some time the popular craze
has in
It
of the day.
By this many fools have been deeply impressed and many pedants shocked and put off. The present writer belongs evidently to the
first
category, for he was for
a time unduly influenced by the theories of Freud and Rivers, Jung,
But pedantry
and Jones.
will
remain
the master passion in the student, and subsequent reflection soon chilled the initial enthusiasms.
This process followed I
by the
with
its
all
can be
careful reader in this little volume.
do not want, however, to
dramatic
ramifications
volte-face.
I
raise expectations of a
have never been
in
any sense
a follower of psycho-analytic practice, or an adherent of psycho-analytic
of
theory
;
and now, while impatient
the exorbitant claims of psycho-analysis,
chaotic arguments
and tangled terminology,
of I
its
must
yet acknowledge a deep sense of indebtedness to
it
for stimulation as well as for valuable instruction in
some aspects
of
human
psychology.
— PREFACE
Vlll
Psycho-analysis has plunged us into the midst of a dynamic theory of the mind,
it
has given to the study
of mental processes a concrete turn,
has led us to
it
concentrate on child psychology and the history of
Last but
the individual.
of
the
human
life.
upon us the consideration unacknowledged
sides of
The open treatment
my
in
man
in
which psycho-analysis is
and
of sex
meanesses and vanities
least,
i;iot
man
that
;
fig leaf.
one
is,
if
As a pupil and
shall not accuse
—however
profoundly
of the sex impulse.
I
Nor
protest, righteously
—the very things for above
the
pan-sexualism
of
disagree with his treatment
as such, at times unclean,
is
my
hands
Man
is
views under of the
dirt
an animal, and,
and the honest anthro-
The student's grievance
not that
it
has treated sex
openly and with due emphasis, but
the
to
and even without
shall I accept his
pologist has to face this fact.
As
all
and
he wants to study his
Freud
with which they are covered.
treated
shameful
follower of Havelock Ellis, " "
washing
against psycho-analysis
and
most hated and reviled
is
subject without irrelevant trappings
for
unofficial
of various
endear psycho-analysis,
student of
I
has forced
opinion of the greatest value to science,
should
the
it
that
it
has
incorrectly.
it
to the chequered history of the present volume,
first
the rest.
two parts were written much
Many
ideas laid
down
earlier
than
there were formed
PREFACE while
I
was engaged
ix
studying the Hfe of Melanesian
in
communities on a coral archipelago. tions sent to
and some
me by
literature with
me, stimulated
The
instruc-
my friend Professor C. G. Seligman,
me
which he kindly supplied
to reflect on the
manner
in
which
the Oedipus complex and other manifestations of the " unconscious " might appear in a
community
The actual observations
founded on mother-right.
on the matrilineal complex among Melanesians are to
my
knowledge the
application of psycho-
first
analytic theory to the study of savage
may
such
of his
life,
and as
be of some interest to the student of man,
mind and
My
of his culture.
conclusions are
couched in a terminology more psycho-analytic than I
Even so I do not go much complex " and " repression ",
should like to use now.
beyond such words as
"
using both in a perfectly definite and empirical sense.
As and
my
reading advanced,
less inclined to
conclusions of Freud,
still less
feel
more
found myself
manner the
As an anthropologist
especially that ambitious theories with
regard to savages, hypotheses of the origin of institutions
less
those of every brand and
sub-brand of psycho-analysis. I
I
accept in a wholesale
and accounts
human
of the history of culture,
should be based on a sound knowledge of primitive hfe, as well as of the
of the
human mind.
unconscious or conscious aspects After
all
neither group-marriage
nor totemism, neither avoidance of mother-in-law
PREFACE
X
nor magic happen in the " unconscious "
and cultural
solid sociological
them
facts,
and
;
they are
to deal with
theoretically requires a type of experience
which
That
cannot be acquired in the consulting room. misgivings are justified
all
my
have been able to convince
I
myself by a careful scrutiny of Freud's Totem and Taboo, of his Group-Psychology and the Analysis of the Ego, of
the anthropological works of
My
by Roheim and of Reik, Rank, and Jones.
Australian Totemism
conclusions the reader will find substantiated in
the third part of the present book. In the last part of the book
my
positive views
have
I
on the origins of
tried to set forth
culture.
I
have
there given an outline of the changes which the animal
nature of the
human
species
must have undergone
under the anomalous conditions imposed upon culture.
More
have
especially
I
it
by
attempted to show
that repressions of sexual instinct and some sort of "
complex " must have arisen as a mental by-product
of the creation of culture.
The is
in
the book, on Instinct and Culture,
last part of
my
opinion the most important and at the same
From
time the most debatable. point of view at least,
an attempt
at
an
it is
a pioneering piece of work
No doubt most
to be recast, but
;
exploration of the " no-specialist's-
land " between the science of animal.
the anthropological
I
of
my
man and
that of the
arguments
will
have
believe that they raise important
;
PREFACE issues
will
sooner or later have to be considered
biologist
and animal psychologist, as well as
which
by the
xi
by the student
of culture.
As regards information from animal psychology and biology
I
have had to rely on general reading.
used mainly the works of Darwin and Havelock Professors Lloyd Morgan, Herrick,
have
I
Ellis
;
and Thorndike
;
Heape, Dr. Kohler and Mr. Pyecroft, and such
of Dr.
information as can be found in the sociological books
Westermarck,
of I I
Hobhouse,
Espinas
have not given detailed references
my
wish here to express
works
;
most
of instinct
I
habit
Lloyd Morgan,
seems to I
me
and that
my
the most
have found most
discovered too late that there
discrepancy between
and
indebtedness to these
adequate and whose observations useful.
others.
in the text
of all to those of Professor
whose conception
and
some
is
use of the terms instinct and
of Professor
Lloyd Morgan, and
our
in
respective conceptions of plasticity of instincts.
I
do
not think that this implies any serious divergence of opinion.
a
I
believe also that culture introduces
new dimension
in the plasticity of instincts
and
that here the animal psychologist can profit from
becoming acquainted with the anthropologist's contributions to the problem. I
have received in the preparation
of this
book much
stimulation and help in talking the matter over with
my
friends
Mrs.
Brenda
Z.
Seligman
of
Oxford
PREFACE
xu
Dr. R. H. Lowie and Professor Kroeber of California
University
White
Mr. Firth of
;
New
Washington, and Dr. H.
of
Baltimore
;
of the
London School
Dr. G. V. Hamilton and Dr.
S.
of
S.
of
of
E. JelUffe of
Dr. E. Miller of Harley Street
de Angulo
;
W.
A.
Sulhvan
of
Dr.
Professor Herrick of Chicago University,
and Dr. Ginsberg
Ogden
Zealand
Economics
;
New York
;
Mr. and Mrs. Jaime
;
Berkeley, California, and Mr. C.
Cambridge
;
K.
Professor Radcliffe-Brown of
Cape Town and Sydney, and Mr. Lawrence K. Frank of
New York
is
based has been made possible by the munificence
of Mr.
My this
City.
The
field-work on which the book
Robert Mond. friend Mr. Paul
book
is
Khuner
of Vienna, to
dedicated, has helped
competent criticism which cleared present subject as on
many
me
greatly
my
whom by
his
ideas on the
others.
B. M. Department of Anthropology, London School of Economics, University of London. February. 1927.
CONTENTS
Preface
......
PAGE vii
PART THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX I
CHAPTER I.
II.
The Problem The Family
.
IV.
V. VI.
VII. VIII.
IX.
.
.
i
....
8
The First Stage of the Family Drama Fatherhood in Mother-right
25
Infantile Sexuality
33
in
Mother-right III.
.
Father-right and
.....
.
•
•
•
The Apprenticeship to Life The Sexuality of Later Childhood Puberty The Complex of Mother-right .
.
..... ,
i8
40 49 59
74
PART II THE MIRROR OF TRADITION I.
II.
III.
IV.
Complex and Myth in Mother-right Disease and Perversion Dreams and Deeds Obscenity and Myth
... .
.
.
.
.
83 85 91
104
CONTENTS
xiv
PART III PSYCHO-ANALYSIS AND ANTHROPOLOGY PAGE I.
The Rift Between Psycho-analysis AND Social Science " A Repressed Complex " " The Primordial Cause of Culture " The Consequences of the Parricide The Original Parricide Analysed Complex or Sentiment ? .
II.
III.
IV. V.
VI.
.
.
.
.
135 142
148
154 159 173
PART IV INSTINCT AND CULTURE I.
II.
.....
The Transition from Nature to Culture The Family as the Cradle of Nascent Culture Rut and Mating in Animal and Man .
III.
IV. V.
VI.
Marital Relations Parental Love
VII.
IX.
Man
XI. XII.
.... .
.
.
.
.
.
...
The Plasticity of Human Instincts From Instinct to Sentiment Motherhood and the Temptations .
OF Incest X.
.
184 193
201
207
The Persistence of Family Ties in
VIII.
.
179
.
.....
Authority and Repression Father-right and Mother-right Culture amd the Complex Index
218 225
229 243 253
.
.
263
......
274 281
.
.
" After ignoring impulses for a long time in behalf
modern psychology now tends
of sensations,
start
to
out with an inventory and description of instinctive activities.
when and
This
it tries to
social life by direct reference to these nature
the explanation becomes
"
We
have
need
to
educated
significant
hazy and forced
know about original
element
into
we
before
in
.
.
powers
.
the social conditions
aztivities
dispositions
psychological
But
an undoubted improvement.
is
explain complicated events in personal
can
discuss
This
society.
which
definite
the
is
and the
true
Native human social psychology of nature supplies the raw materials but custom furnishes
meaning the
.
machinery and the designs
.
.
... Man
a creature
is
of habit, not of reason nor yet of instinct. " The treatment of sex by psycho-analysts is most instructive, for it flagrantly exhibits both the consequences of artificial simplification and the transformation of social
results
into psychic
causes.
male, hold forth on the psychology of
usually
Writers,
woman
as if they
They phenomena, which are peculiarly symptoms of the civilization of the West at the present time, as if they were dealing with a Platonic universal entity
.
.
.
treat
were the necessary
human
efforts
of fixed native impulses of
nature,"
JOHN DEWEY,
in
Human
Nature and Conduct
PART
I
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX I
THE PROBLEM pSYCHO-ANALYSIS was born practice,
but of
medical
and its theories are mainly psychological,
stands in close relation to two other branches
it
learning
It is
from
—biology
perhaps one of
and
the
its chief
science
of
merits that
society. it
forges
another link between these three divisions of the science of
The psychological
man.
views
Freud
of
—his
theories of conflict, repression, the unconscious, the
formation of complexes
and they cover
of psycho-analysis,
The
—form the best elaborated part
biological doctrine
its
proper
field.
—
the treatment of sexuality and
of its relation to other instincts, the concept of the '
libido
'
and
its
various transformations
thetheory which contradictions
is
and
much
sociological aspect,
a part of
and which
from
and partly
receives
more
justified.
The
which most interests us here,
deserve more attention. sociology
is
less finished, less free
lacunae,
criticism, partly spurious
—
will
Curiously enough, though
and anthropology have contributed most
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; SEX AND REPRESSION
2
evidence in favour of psycho-analysis, and though the the Oedipus complex has obviously a
doctrine of
sociological aspect, this aspect has received the least
attention.
Psycho-analytic doctrine the influence of family are
shown how the
of
the
a theory of
We
on the human mind.
life
and
conflicts
father,
mother,
passions, stresses
relation
in
child
is essentially
to
its
brother and sister result in the formation of certain
permanent mental attitudes or sentiments towards them, sentiments which, partly living in memory,
embedded
partly later
life
society.
T
individual
the
am
using the word sentiment in the technical
by Mr. A.
it
implications
his theory of
The
in
to
relations
his
F. Shand, with all the
which
it
has
received
in
emotions and instincts.
sociological nature of this doctrine is obvious
the whole Freudian definite
of
the unconscious, influence the
of
sense given to
important
in
drama
is
played out within a
type of social organization, in the narrow
the
children.
family,
composed
of
father,
circle
mother, and
Thus the family complex, the most impor-
tant psychological fact according to Freud,
is
due
to the action of a certain type of social grouping
upon the human mind. received
by every
Again, the mental imprint
individual in youth exercises further
social influences, in
formation of certain
that ties,
it
predisposes
and moulds
him
to the
his receptive
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX and
dispositions
of tradition, art,
Thus the logical
his creative
power
in
the domains
thought, and reUgion.
sociologist
feels
that
to
the
treatment of the complex there
added two
3
sociological
chapters
psycho-
should
be
an introduction
:
with an account of the sociological nature of family
and an epilogue containing the analysis
influences,
of the consequences of the
complex
problems therefore emerge for the First problem.
mentality,
is
family
character
its
For the fact
human
If
life is
societies.
sociologist.
human
so fateful for
more
deserves
that the family
Two
for society.
attention.
not the same in
is
Its constitution varies greatly
all
with
the level of development and with the character of the civilization of the people, and in the different strata of the
to theories logists,
same
it is
not the same
society.
According
even to-day among anthropo-
current
the family has changed enormously during
the development of humanity, passing from
its first
promiscuous form, based on sexual and economic
conununism, through marriage', '
'
group-family
'consanguineous
Punalua marriage
',
'
based on
family',
'
group-
based
on
through the Grossfamilie and
clan kindred to its final form in our present-day society
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;the individual family based on monogamous
marriage and the patria potestas. anthropological fact with
much
constructions
But apart from such which combine some
hypothesis, there
is
no doubt that
SEX AND REPRESSION
4
from actual observation among present-day savages
we can
see great variations in the constitution of the
There
family.
in
the
father,
give
the
divergencies in the methods of counting
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;matriliny
of
various
the
There are considerable
sub-divisions of mother-right.
and patriUny
the
forms
several
patriarchy, or vested in the mother,
descent
on
depending
differences
power which, vested in a varying
of
distribution
degree
are
and regarding
based on ignorance of fatherhood
in spite of this ignorance
patriUny
;
due to power, and patriliny due to economic reasons. Moreover, differences in settlement, housing, sources of food supply, division of labour
greatly the constitution of the
and
human
so on, alter
family
among
the various races and peoples of mankind.
The problem passions and
with
its
therefore emerges
:
do the
conflicts,
attachments within the family vary
constitution, or
throughout humanity
?
do they remain the same If
they vary, as in fact
they do, then the nuclear complex of the family
cannot remain constant in peoples
;
The
family. is,
it
all
human
races
must vary with the constitution
and
of the
main task of psycho-analytic theory
therefore, to study the limits of the variation
to frame the appropriate formula;
and
finally,
;
to
discuss the outstanding types of family constitution
and to
state the corresponding forms of the nuclear
complex.
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX With perhaps one
exception,^ this problem has not
been raised, at least not in an
yet
to the Freudian School, universal,
I
mean
explicit
exclusively
the Oedipus complex, corresponds
Aryan family with the
essentially to our patrilineal
developed patria potestas, buttressed by
and
Christian
and
morals,
Yet
this
complex
is
savage or barbarous society. correct, will
far this
assumed to
of
the
exist in every
This certainly cannot be of the first
assumption
What
The second problem. influence
by
of the well-to-do bour-
and a detailed discussion
show us how
Roman law
accentuated
modern economic conditions geoisie.
and
known and assumed by them to be
The complex
manner.
direct
5
is
is
problem
untrue.
the nature of the
the family complex on the formation
of
myth, legend, and fairy
of
savage and barbarous customs, forms of social
tale,
on certain types
organization and achievements of material culture
?
This problem has been clearly recognized by the psycho-analytic
writers
their principles to the
culture.
who have been applying
study of myth, reUgion, and
But the theory of how the constitution
of the
family influences culture and society through the forces of the
family
complex has not been worked out
^ I refer to Mr. J. C. Fliigel's The Psycho- Analytic Study of the Family, which, though written by a psychologist, is throughout orientated in the sociological direction. The later chapters, especially XV and XVII, contain much which is an approach to the present problem, although the writer does not formulate it explicitly.
SEX AND REPRESSION
6
Most of the views bearing on
correctly.
this second
problem need a thorough revision from the sociological
The concrete
point of view.
solutions,
on the other
Rank and Jones of the actual mythological problems are much sounder than their general principle that the " myth is the secular dream hand, offered by Freud,
of the race ".
by emphasizing that the
Psycho-analysis, of primitive
man
is
interest
centred in himself and in the
people around him, and
is
of a concrete
and dynamic
nature, has given the right foundation to primitive
psychology, hitherto frequently immeshed in a false
view of the dispassionate interest of
and
of
But by ignoring the
about his destiny.
and by making the complex
in nature
with philosophic speculations
concern
his
man
tacit
first
problem,
assumption that the Oedipus
exists in all types of society, certain errors
have crept into the anthropological work
Thus they cannot reach
analysts.
of psycho-
correct results
when they try to trace the Oedipus complex,
essentially
patriarchal in character, in a matrilineal society
;
or
when they play about with
the hypotheses of group-
marriage or promiscuity, as
if
no special precautions
were necessary when approaching conditions so entirely foreign
to
the
family as
it
Involved
in
is
constitution
known
such
of
our
contradictions,
logizing psycho-analyst
own form
of
to psycho-analytic practice.
the
anthropo-
makes a hypothetical assump-
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX tion about
some type
of primitive horde, or
a prehistoric prototype of the totemic
about
sacrifice,
about the dream character of the myth,
7
or
usually
quite incompatible with the fundamental principles of psycho-analysis itself.
Part
I
of
the
work
present
is
attempt based on facts observed at savages, to discuss the of
the
nuclear
the family. is
first
problem
essentially
first
an
hand among
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;the dependence
complex upon the constitution of
The treatment
of the second
problem
reserved for Part II, while in the last two parts the
same twin subjects
are discussed in a general manner.
II
THE FAMILY
AND
IN FATHER-RIGHT
MOTHER-RIGHT '
I
^HE
best waj^ to examine this
what manner the
'
family complex
and modified by the constitution given society to follow
course of
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
is
problem
first '
is
influenced
of the family in a
to enter concretely into the matter,
up the formation typical family
the complex in the
of
and to do
life,
it
paratively in the case of different civilizations.
not
propose here to survey
family, but shall
to
me from
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; in
compare
personal
forms of
all
in detail
two
observation
:
types,
comI
do
human known
the patrilineal
family of modern civilization, and the matrilineal family of certain island communities in North-Western Melanesia.
These
two
cases,
however, represent
perhaps the two most radically different types of family
known
to sociological observation, and will
thus serve our purpose well.
A
few words
will
be
necessary to introduce the Trobriand Islanders of
North-Eastem Melanesia)
who
New will
Guinea
(or
North-Western
form the other term
comparison, besides our
own
culture.
of
our
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX These natives are matrilineal, that in a social order in
the
descend in the female or
they Uve
is,
is
reckoned through
succession
and inheritance
which kinship
mother only, and
9
This means that the boy
line.
belongs to the mother's family, clan and com-
girl
munity
:
the boy succeeds to the dignities and social
position of the mother's brother,
and
not from
it is
the father but from the maternal uncle or maternal aunt, respectively, that a child inherits its possessions.
Every man and woman
in the Trobriands settles
down eventually to matrimony, after a period of sexual by general
play in childhood, followed
and
adolescence,
later
licence in
by a time when the
lovers live
together in a more permanent intrigue, sharing with
two or three other couples a communal house
'.
except
Matrimony, which with
chiefs,
usually
is
who have
'
bachelor's
monogamous,
several
wives,
is
a permanent union, involving sexual exclusiveness, a
common economic At
household.
a
superficial
of marriage
existence,
glance
first
observer
among
entirely different.
to
ourselves.
and an independent might
it
be
appear
exact
the
pattern
In reaUty, however,
To begin
to
it is
the husband
with,
is
not regarded as the father of the children in the sense in which
we use
this
word
he has nothing to do with their to the ideas of the natives, physical fatherhood.
who
;
physiologically birth,
according
are ignorant
Children, in native
belief,
of are
SEX AND REPRESSION
10
generally
by the agency
kinswoman
them
arms
in his
are not
'
his
when
children,
to
'
receive
they are bom, but they
had a share
in the sense that he has
'
spirits,
Her husband has then
and cherish the '
tiny
as
of the spirit of a deceased
of the mother.^
protect
to
womb
mother's
the
into
inserted
in their procreation.
The but
father
not
He
is
a
is
thus a beloved, benevolent friend,
kinsman
recognized
a stranger,
having
the
of
children.
through
authority
his
personal relations to the child, but not through his sociological
that
position
identity of substance,
is
only through the mother. children
vested in
is
this person,
Real kinship,
the lineage.
in
the
owing to the
'same body',
mother's brother.
strict
Now
taboo which prevents
friendly relations between brothers
all
exists
The authority over the
and
sisters,
can never be intimate with the mother, or therefore with her household.
She recognizes
and bends before him
as a
his authority,
commoner
before a chief,
but there can never be tender relations between
Her children
them.
and
successors,
potestas.
At
however, his only heirs
and he wields over them the
his death his worldly
their keeping,
^
are,
and during
his lifetime
direct
goods pass into
he has to hand
See the writer's The Father in Primitive Psychology (Psyche and " Baloma, Spirits of the Dead ", Journ. R.
Miniatures), 1927,
Anthrop.
Inst.. 1916.
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX
ii
over to them any special accomplishment he
may
possess
He
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; dances,
also
it is
who
and
magic
myths,
songs,
supplies his sister
crafts.
and her household
with food, the greater part of his garden produce going to them.
To the
father, therefore, the children look
only
loving
care
for
and tender companionship.
Their mother's brother represents the principle of authority,
discipline,
the family.
The bearing
of the wife
sphere
towards her husband
She has her
at all servile.
own
and executive power within
1
of
influence,
own
possessions
private
and
is
not
and her
public.
It
never happens that the children see their mother
buUied by the father. only
is
partially
work mainly that
work
for his
On
the other hand, the father
bread-winner,
the
own
sisters,
when they grow up they
and
has
while the boys in turn will
to
know
have to
for their sisters' households.
Marriage
is
patrilocal
:
that
is,
the
goes to join
girl
her husband in his house and migrates to his com-
munity, the case.
if
she comes from another, which
The children
munity where they are right to the soil,
therefore
is
grow up
legally strangers,
no lawful pride in the
in general in a
com-
having no
village glory
;
For an account of the strange economic conditions of these see the writer's " Primitive Economics " in Economic Journal, 1921, and Argonauts of the Western Pacific, chapters ii and vi. The legal side has been fully discussed in Crime and Custom ^
natives,
in Savage Society, 1926.
SEX AND REPRESSION
12
while their home, their traditional centre of patriotism,
and
possessions,
their
and confusion
pride
their
of
Strange combina-
ancestorship are in another place. tions
local
with this dual
arise, associated
influence.
From an
early age boys
and
girls of
the same mother
are separated in the family, owing to the strict taboo
which enjoins that there
shall be
between them, and that above
no intimate all
relations
any subject con-
nected with sex should never interest them in common. thus comes about that though the brother
It
the person in authority over the forbids
him to use
of her marriage.
this authority
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
^her
when
it is
really
the taboo
a question
The privilege of giving or withholding
consent, therefore, father
sister,
is
is
left
to the parents, and the
mother's husband
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
is
person
the
who
has most authority, in this one matter of his daughter's marriage.
The great
difference
in
two
the
which we are going to compare clear.
In our
own type
authoritative, powerful
up by
society. 1
We
of
is
family
types
beginning to be
family
we have the
husband and father backed
have also the economic arrange-
" should like to mention that although under " our own I am here speaking about the European and American communities in general, I have in mind primarily the average type of continental family, as this was the material on which the conclusions of psycho-analysis were founded. Whether among the higher social strata of the Western European or of the North American ^
I
civilization
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
;
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX ment whereby he nominally at least with them at his
is
i,^
the bread-winner, and can
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;^withhold supplies or be generous
will.
In the Trobriands, on the other
hand, we have the independent mother and her husband, who has nothing to do with the procreation of the children, and is not the bread-winner, who cannot leave
possessions
his
socially
to
the
children,
and
has
The
no estabUshed authority over them.
mother's relatives on the other hand are endowed with
very powerful influence, especially her brother, who
is
the authoritative person, the producer of supplies for the family, and whose possessions the sons will inherit at his death.
Thus the pattern
of social life
and the
constitution of the family are arranged on entirely different lines It
from those
our culture.
might appear that while
to survey the family it is
of
life
it
would be interesting
in a
superfluous to dwell on our
intimately
known
matrilineal society,
own
to everyone of us
family Ufe, so
and so frequently
recapitulated in recent psycho-analytic literature.
might simply take it is
it
essential in a strict
for granted.
But
first
of
We all,
comparative treatment to keep
the terms of the comparison clearly before our eyes we are now slowly moving towards a condition of mothermore akin to the legal ideas of Melanesia than to those of Roman Law and of continental custom, I do not dare to prophesy. If the thesis of this book be correct, some modern developments in matters of sex (" petting parties ", etc.), as well as the weakening of the patriarchal system, should deeply modify the configurations
cities
right
of the sentiments within the family.
SEX AND REPRESSION
14
and then,
since the matriUneal data to be given here
have been collected by special methods of anthropological field
work,
it
is
material into the
indispensable to cast the European
same shape, as if
by the same methods and looked logical point of view.
I
it
at
account any direct
and consistent reference to the
its
any discussion
of
from the anthropo-
have not, as stated already,
found in any psycho-analytic
less
had been observed
how
milieu,
social
still
the nuclear complex and
causes vary with the social stratum in our society.
Yet
obvious that the infantile conflicts will not
it is
be the same in the lavish nursery of the wealthy bourgeois as in the cabin of the peasant, or in the one-
room tenement
Now
of the poor working-man.
just
in order to vindicate the truth of the psycho-analytic
doctrine,
it
would be important to consider the lower
and the ruder strata
where a spade
of society,
a spade, where the child
is
is
called
permanent contact
in
with the parents, living and eating in the same room
and sleeping stitute
'
in the
same bed, where no
'
parent sub-
complicates the picture, no good manners
modify the brutality of the impact, and where the jealousies
in
and petty competitions
hardened though repressed
of daily life clash
hostility.^
^ My personal knowledge of the life, customs and psychology of Eastern European peasants has allowed me to ascertain deep differences between the illiterate and the educated classes of the same society as regards the mental attitude of parents to children
and vice versa.
— THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX It
may
be added that when
complex and
need
not
of
the nuclear
bed-rock of social and biological
its
actuality in order to apply
the
we study
15
to the study of folk-lore,
it
peasant and the
the
neglecting
more urgent.
For the popular
traditions originated in a condition
more akin to that
illiterate classes is still
modern Central and Eastern European peasant,
of the
or of the poor artisan, than to that of the overfed
and nervously overwrought people London, or In
York.
to
make
order
clearly
into
New
I
describing
and
comparison
the
divide
shall
periods,
the
treat
history
each
and comparing
modern Vienna,
of
it
of
stand
of
them
out
childhood separately,
The
in both societies.
clear distinction of stages in the history of family life is
important in the treatment of the nuclear complex,
for psycho-analysis chief merits of
the
—has
—and
here really
lies
one of
its
brought to light the stratification
human mind, and shown
its
rough corre-
spondence to the stages in the child's development.
The
distinct
accompanying
periods
of
repressions
sexuality,
the
and amnesias
crises,
in
the
which
some memories are relegated to the unconscious all
these imply a clear division of the child's
periods.^
For the present purpose
it will
life
into
be enough
1 Although in Professor Freud's treatment of infantile sexuality, the division into several distinct stages plays a fundamental role, yet in his most detailed work on the subject (Drei Abhandlungen zur Sexualtheorie, 5th edition) the scheme of the successive stages is
SEX AND REPRESSION
i6
to distinguish four periods in the development of the child, defined
by
biological
and
Infancy, in which the
1.
sociological criteria.
baby
is
dependent for
its
nourishment on the mother's breast and for safety
on the protection
of the parent, in
move independently nor
We
ideas.
this period lasts
his
wishes and
reckon this period as ranging from
shall
Among
birth to the time of weaning.
savage peoples,
from about two to three years.
communities
civilized
which he cannot
articulate
about one year only.
it
is
But
much it
is
shorter
In
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
^generally
better to take the
natural landmarks to di\dde the stages of childhood.
The
child
is
at this time physiologically
bound up
with the family. the time in
Babyhood,
2.
which the
offspring,
while attached to the mother and unable to lead
an independent freely play
existence, yet can
round about
period to take
up
her.
first
talk,
and
reckon this
three or four years, and thus bring
the child to the age of about covers the
We
move, shall
six.
This term of
life
gradual severing of the family bonds.
not lucidly nor even explicitly drawn up. This makes the reading book somewhat difficult to a non-specialist in psychoanalysis, and it creates certain ambiguities and contradictions, real and apparent, which the present writer has not yet fully solved. of this
Fliigel's
otherwise excellent exposition of psycho-analysis {op.
cit.)
work which The word sets out to clear up and systematize the doctrine. child throughout the book is used sometimes to mean 'baby ', sometimes adolescent and the sense as a rule has to be inferred from the context. In this respect I hope that the present outline will be of some use.
also suffers from this defect, especially regrettable in a '
'
'
',
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX The
move away from
child learns to
17
the family
and
begins to be self-sufficient.
attainment
the
Childhood,
3.
pendence, the epoch of
is
branches of humanity and in
full
the time also all classes of
membership
the
of
some savages, the preliminary
Among
when
inde-
in all
a society the
some way or other to become
child begins in
into
relative
about and playing
roving
This
with other children.
of
initiated
Among
community.
rites of initiation begin.
and among our own peasants and
others
working people, especially on the Continent, the child begins to be apprenticed to his future economic
In Western
European and American communities This
children begin their schooling at this time. is
life.
the period of the second severing from family
influences,
and
lasts
it
till
puberty, which forms
its
natural term. Adolescence, between physiological puberty
4.
full social
this
epoch
initiation,
tribal
is
is
many savage
and in other
rites of
tribes it is the epoch in
which
law and order lay their claim on the youth In
modem
civilized
communities
the time of secondary and higher schooling,
or else of the final apprenticeship to the
This
and
communities,
encompassed by the principal
and on the maiden. it
In
maturity.
is
life
task.
the period of complete emancipation from
the family atmosphere.
own lower
strata
it
the foundation of a
Among
savages and in our
normally ends with marriage and
new
family.
Ill
THE FIRST STAGE OF THE FAMILY DRAMA TT
is
a general characteristic of the is
not
but has to rely for
its
the offspring
and
cleanliness
arrangements
mammals
and independent
that
at birth,
nourishment, safety, warmth,
comfort
bodily
To
mother.
its
free
on
the
care
of
this correspond the various bodily
of
mother and
child.
Physiologically
there exists a passionate instinctive interest of the
mother
in the child,
and a craving
for the maternal organism, for the
of the suckling
warmth
body, the support of her arms and, above
and contact
At
of her breast.
first
the relation
determined by the mother's selective passion
own
only her
offspring
is
of her
the milk
all,
dear, while the
is
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;to her
baby would
be satisfied with the body of any lactant woman.
But soon the
child also distinguishes,
ment becomes the
of life
mother.
Thus
This link that young
is
first
establishes a link for
birth
child.
founded on the biological fact
mammals cannot
the species depends for strongest
instincts,
his attach-
and individual as that
as exclusive
between mother and
and
its
that
live unaided,
survival on one of the
of 18
and thus
maternal
love.
But
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX society hastens to step in
and to add
19
its at first feeble
In
decree to the powerful voice of nature.
all
human
communities, savage or civilized, custom, law and
sometimes
morals,
take
religion,
bond between mother and
of the at a?
even
cognizance
offspring, usually
early a stage as the beginning of gestation.
The mother, sometimes the various taboos
father also, has to keep
and observances, or perform
womb.
within the social
Birth
is
event, round which
between mother and physiological
its
life
always an important
cluster
many
usages, often associated with religion.
most natural and most
rites
new
which have to do with the welfare of the
traditional
Thus even the
directly biological tie, that
child,
has
as well as
its social
and
determination,
be
cannot
described without reference to the influence exercised
by
the tradition and usage of the community.
Let us briefly summarize and characterize these social
co-determinants of motherhood in
Maternity
society. artistic
ideal
is
our
own
a moral, reUgious and even
of civilization,
a pregnant
woman
is
protected by law and custom, and should be regarded as a sacred object, while she herself ought to feel proud
and happy
in her condition.
which can be reaUzed
is
and ethnographical data.
That
vouched for by
Even
in
an ideal
this is
historical
modem
Europe,
the orthodox Jewish communities of Poland keep it
up
in
practice,
and amongst them a pregnant
;;
SEX AND REPRESSION
20
woman
an object of real veneration, and
is
In
proud of her condition. societies,
the
Christian
among
however, pregnancy
made a burden, and regarded among the well-to-do people it
Aryan
the lower classes
a nuisance
as
is
feels
a
is
source
of
embarrassment, discomfort, and temporary ostracism
from ordinary
social
life.
Since
we thus have
to
recognize the importance of the mother's pre-natal attitude for her future sentiment towards her offspring,
and
since this attitude varies greatly with the milieu
and depends on sociological
At
important that this
social values, it is
problem should be studied more
birth,
the
strengthened
by
society,
and
patterns
biological
instinctive impulses of the
closely.
the
mother are endorsed and which,
many
in
of
its
customs, moral rules and ideals, makes the mother the nurse of the child, and this, broadly speaking, in the low as in the high strata of almost all nations of
Europe.
Yet even here in
mental, so biologically societies
where
a
secured,
relation
there
funda-
are
certain
custom and laxity of innate im-
pulses allow of notable aberrations.
the system of sending the child
year or so of
so
its life
Thus we have
away
for
the
first
to a hired foster mother, a custom
once highly prevalent in the middle classes of France or the almost equally harmful system of protecting
the woman's breasts
by
hiring a foster mother, or
by
feeding the child on artificial food, a custom once
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX among
prevalent
the wealthy classes, though to-day
Here again the
generally stigmatized as unnatural. sociologist has to
add
his share in order to give the
true picture of motherhood, as national, economic
now
Let us
and moral
Melanesiai;
it
varies according to
differences.
turn to consider the same relation
in a matrilineal society
The
21
on the shores
woman shows
of the Pacific.
invariably a passionate
craving for her child, and the surrounding society
seconds her feelings, fosters her incUnations and idealizes
them by custom and
usage.
of pregnancy, the expectant
From
the
first
moments
mother
is
made
to watch
over the welfare of her future offspring
number pregnant
of food taboos
woman
reverence,
an
The
and other observances.
regarded by custom as an object of
ideal
actual behaviour exists
is
by keeping a
and
which
is
fully realized
feelings of these natives.
by the There
an elaborate ceremony performed at the
first
pregnancy, with an intricate and somewhat obscure aim, but emphasizing the importance of the event
and conferring on the pregnant woman
distinction
and
honour. After the birth, mother and child are secluded for
about a month, the mother constantly tending her child
and nursing
it,
while certain female relatives
only are admitted into the hut.
normal circumstances
is
Adoption under
very rare, and even then the
child is usually given over only after it has been
SEX AND REPRESSION
22
weaned, nor
is it
nearest
relatives
vances,
such
child, special
ever adopted
by
exclusively.
A number
as
strangers, but
washing
ritual
of
by
obser-
of
mother and
taboos to be kept by the mother, and
visits of presentation,
bind mother and child by links
custom superimposed upon the natural
ones.^
Thus
adjustment
of
in both societies, to the biological
of instinct there are
added the
morals and manners,
all
social forces of
custom,
working in the same direction
of binding mother and child to each other, of giving
them
scope for the passionate intimacy of mother-
full
This harmony between social and biological
hood.
forces ensures full satisfaction
and the highest
Society co-operates with nature to repeat the
bliss.
happy
womb, broken by the trauma of Rank, in a work which has already
conditions in the Dr.
birth.
proved of some importance for the development of psycho-analysis, 2 has indicated
the significance for
later Ufe of intra-uterine existence
and
its
Whatever we might think about the trauma '
there
is
reaUze,
no doubt that the
by the
working
first
of
months
both
memories. '
of birth,
after birth
biological
and
An
important form of the taboo observed by a mother after birth is the sexual abstinence enjoined upon her. For a beautiful expression of the high moral view of natives concerning this custom see The Contact of Races and Clash of Culture, by G. Pitt-Rivers, ^
1927, chap,
viii, sec. 3.
Das Trauma der Geburt (1924). Needless to say, the conclusions of Dr. Rank's book are entirely unacceptable to the present writer, who is not able to adopt any of the recent developments of psycho*
analysis nor even to understand their meaning.
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX a state of
sociological forces, '
trauma
of weaning.
'
from this state of
broken by
bliss
23 the
The exceptional aberrations be found only
affairs are to
among
the higher strata of civilized communities.
We find
a
much
of the patriarchal
and
it is
greater difference in the fatherhood
and matrilineal family
at this period,
rather unexpected to find that in a savage
where the physical bonds of paternity are
society,
unknown, and where mother should yet stand in a
right obtains, the father
much more
intimate relation to
the children than normally happens
among
ourselves.
For in our own society, the father plays a very small part indeed in the usage,
life
young
of a
By
infant.
and manners, the well-to-do father
is
custom,
kept out
of the nursery, while the peasant or working
man
has to leave the child to his wife for the greater part of the twenty-four hours.
He may
perhaps resent
the attention which the infant claims, and the time
which
it
takes up, but as a rule he neither helps nor
interferes with a small child.
Among the Melanesians purely social relation
duty towards his
them
'
fatherhood,' as
wife's children
into his arms
',
we know, is a
Part of this relation consists in his
.
;
he
is
there to receive '
a phrase we have already quoted
;
he has to carry them about when on the march the
mother
is tired,
and he has to
assist in the nursing at
home. He tends them in their natural needs, and cleanses them, and there are
many
stereotyped expressions
SEX AND REPRESSION
24
in the native language referring to fatherhood its
hardships,
A
him.
and to the duty
of fiUal gratitude
typical Trobriand father
and conscientious nurse and
in this
children, all
is
towards
a hard-working
is
he obeys the
The
of duty, expressed in social tradition.
however, that the father
and
call
fact
is,
always interested in the
sometimes passionately
so,
and performs
his duties eagerly and fondly.
Thus, if we compare the patriarchal and the matriUneal relation at this early stage,
we see that
In our society, the father
difference lies with the father. is
kept
weU
nate part.
out of the picture,
with
and has at best a subordi-
In the Trobriands, he plays a
active role, which gives
the main point of
is
important above
all
much more because
it
him a far greater scope for forming ties of affection his
children.
In
both
found with a few exceptions,
societies
little
between the biological trend and the
room
there
is
for conflict,
social conditions.
IV
FATHERHOOD
TX 7E
IN
MOTHER-RIGHT
have now reached the period when the child already weaned,
is
and begins to speak. gaining
when
it is
learning to walk
Yet biologically
it is
but slowly
independence from the mother's body.
its
It clings to her
with undiminished, passionate desire
for her presence, for the touch of her
body and the
tender clasp of hen arms.
This
is
the natural, biological tendency, but in our
society, at
one stage or another, the child's desires are
crossed and thwarted. Let us
first
realize that the period
upon which we now enter is introduced by the process of
By this the blissful harmony of infantile life is broken, or at least modified. Among the higher classes, weaning.
weaning that
it
women is
is
so
graduated
prepared,
usually passes without
and adjusted
any shock.
But among
of the lower classes, in our society,
weaning
often a painful wrench for the mother and certainly
for
the child.
Later on,
other obstacles tend
to
obtrude upon the intimacy of the mother with the child,
whom at that stage a notable change is taking place. He becomes independent in his movements, can feed
in
himself, express
some
of his feelings 25
and
ideas,
and
SEX AND REPRESSION
26
begins to understand and to observe. classes,
In the higher
the nursery arrangements separate the mother
from the child in a gradual manner. with any shock, but
it
This dispenses
leaves a gap in the child's
a yearning and an unsatisfied need.
life,
In the lower
where the child shares the parents' bed,
classes,
becomes
at a certain time a source of
and an encumbrance, and
suffers
it
embarrassment
a rude and more
brutal repulsion.
How
does savage motherhood on the coral islands
New
of
Guinea compare at this stage with ours
First of
all,
at a time
weaning takes place much
when the
run about,
eat
other interests.
when the breast '
child
is
?
life,
already independent, can
and foUow
everjrthing
practically It
later in
takes place, that
is,
at a
moment
child neither wants nor needs the mother's
any more, so that the
first
wrench
is
eliminated.
Matriarchate,' the rule of the mother, does not in
any way
entail a
stem, terrible mother-virago.
The
Trobriand mother carries her children, fondles them,
and plays with them
at this stage quite as lovingly
as at the earlier period,
expects
it
from
her.
and custom as well as morals
The
child
is
bound to
her, also,
according to law, custom and usage, by a closer
than
is
tie
her husband, whose rights are subservient
to those of the offspring.
The psychology
of the
intimate marital relations has therefore a different character,
and the repulsion
of the
child
from the
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX mother by the father occurrence,
is
certainly
ever occurs at
if it
not
27
a typical
Another difference
all.
between the Melanesian and the typical European
mother
is
that the former
Since there
any moral education and
room
for severity.
is
the
and
to
among
us
the
desire
win her approval.
remembered,
is
one
attachment among
of
us,
for the
relation in later
begins
is
is
scarcely
;
to
of severity
on the other hand,
lessens the feeling of interest
child,
possibilities
what there
hand such aberrations
as are sometimes found
of
since
;
indulgent.
and hardly
This absence of maternal discipUne
precludes on the one
it
much more
done by other people, there
later
however,
is
training of the child,
is little
please
the
This desire,
the strong
on the part
it
Unks
mother,
must be of
filial
and one which holds great
establishment
of a
permanent
life.
Turning now to the paternal relation we see that, our society, irrespective of nationality or social the father is
still
enjoys the patriarchal status.^
in
class,
He
the head of the family and the relevant link in
the lineage, and he
is
also the economic provider.
^ Here again I should like to make an exception with regard to the modern American and British family. The father is in process of losing his patriarchal position. As conditions are in
however, it is not safe to take them into consideration here. Psycho-analysis cannot hope, I think, to preserve its " Oedipus complex " for future generations, who will only know a weak and henpecked father. For him the children will feel indulgent pity rather than hatred and fear flux,
!
SEX AND REPRESSION
28
As an absolute
ruler of the family,
become a tyrant,
in
which case
he
is
liable to
frictions of all sorts
The
between him and his wife and children.
arise
depend greatly on the
details of these
social milieu.
In the wealthy classes of Western civilization, the child is well separated
from his father by
all sorts
Although constantly with
of nursery arrangements.
the nurse, the child is usually attended to and controlled
by the mother, who,
in such cases, almost invariably
takes the dominant place in the child's affections.
The father, on the other hand,
is
seldom brought within
the child's horizon, and then only as an onlooker
and
stranger,
before
whom
behave themselves, show
the
children
and perform.
off
have to
He
is
the
source of authority, the origin of punishment, and therefore becomes a bogey.
a mixture
he
;
is
Usually the result
is
the perfect being for whose benefit
everything has to be done
whom
and, at the same time,
;
the child has to fear and
he
is
for
whose comfort, as the child soon reaUzes, the house-
hold
the
is
'
ogre
arranged.
will easily
'
The loving and sympathetic
assume the former
pompous, wooden, or suspicion
role of a demi-god.
tactless
and even hate
one
will
father
The
soon earn the
of the nursery.
In relation
to the father, the mother becomes an intermediary
who
is
sometimes ready to denounce the child to
the higher authority, but
who
intercede against punishment.
at the
same time can
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX The picture
is different,
though the
29
results are not
one-room and one-bed households
dissimilar, in the
of the poor peasantry of Central
and Eastern Europe,
or of the lower working classes.
The
father
is
brought
with the child, which in rare
into closer contact
circumstances allows of a greater affection, but usually
much more acute and chronic friction. When a father returns home tired from work, or drunk gives rise to
from the
inn,
mother and
children.
no poor quarter in a
modem
and
family, village,
he naturally vents his ill-temper on the
bullies
There
is
no
town, where
cases could not be found of sheer, patriarchal cruelty.
From my own memory,
could quote numerous
I
cases where peasant fathers would, on returning
home
drunk, beat the children for sheer pleasure, or drag
them out
Even
of
at
bed and send them into the cold night. best,
when the working
father returns
home, the children have to keep quiet, stop rowdy
games and repress spontaneous, of joy
The father
and sorrow.
of punishment in
mother acts as
is
a supreme source
poor households
intercessor,
outbursts
childish
also,
while the
and often shares
treatment meted out to the children.
in the
In the poorer
households, moreover, the economic role of provider
and the and
social
power
of the father are
definitely recognized,
and
act in the
more quickly
same
direction
as his personal influence.
The
role of the Melanesian father at this stage is
SEX AND REPRESSION
30
very different from that of the European patriarch. I
have
briefly sketched in
social position as
Chapter IV his very different
husband and
He
plays in the household.
father, is
and the part he
not the head of the
family, he does not transmit his lineage to his children,
nor
is
he the main provider of food.
This entirely
changes his legal rights and his personal attitude to his wife.
A
Trobriand
his wife, hardly ever will
man
seldom quarrel with
will
attempt to brutalize her, and he
never be able to exercise a permanent tyranny.
Even sexual co-habitation
is
not regarded by native
law and usage as the wife's duty and the husband's privilege, as is the case in
the husband
is
The Trobriand
our society.
natives take the view, dictated
by
tradition,
that
indebted to his wife for sexual services,
that he has to deserve
them and pay
for
them.
One
of the ways, the chief way, in fact, of acquitting
himself of this duty children
many
is
and showing
by performing
these
There are
affection to them.
native sayings which
folk-lore
services for her
principles.
embody In
the
in a sort of loose child's
infancy
the husband has been the nurse, tender and loving later
on in early childhood he plays with
and teaches
it
it,
carries
;
it,
such amusing sports and occupations
as take its fancy.
Thus the of the tribe
legal,
and
all
moral and customary tradition the forces of organization combine
to give the man, in his conjugal
and paternal
rdle.
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX an entirely
And though it
permeates
all
the
The children never
every detail of daily relations
see their
within
not even when she
They never not
is
feel his
upon her husband,
a commoner married to a chief.
heavy hand on themselves
He
he
;
has no rights or prerogatives.
as does every normal father
feels,
there.
kinsman, nor their owner, nor their
their
benefactor.
the
mother subjugated or
brutalized or in abject dependence
he
detached
and dominates the sentiments found
family,
is
a patriarch.
legal principle,
It expresses itself in
life.
existence,
of
has to be defined in an abstract manner,
by no means a mere
this is
from
from that
different attitude
31
world, a strong affection for
them
;
and
Yet
all
over the
this,
together
with his traditional duties, makes him try to win their
and thus to
love,
retain his influence over them.
Comparing European with Melanesian paternity, is
well
the
as
and tender
affectionate
But
this
in
the
many
on a parent.
and
in
feelings
for
hardships
When,
his
children.
which
children
therefore, society steps is
the
and that the children should be there
for his benefit, pleasure
the
is
a tendency towards
one case declares that the father
absolute master,
tilts
man
there
tendency seems not to be strong enough
outweigh
entail
Biologically
sociological.
undoubtedly in the average
to
it
important to keep in mind the biological facts as
and
balance against
glory, this social influence
a happy equilibrium of
SEX AND REPRESSION
32 natural
affection
and natural
impatience
When, on the other hand, a
nuisance.
society grants the father
no
privileges
to his children's affections, then he
and when
again,
in
the
of
matrilineal
and no
right
must earn them,
the same uncivilized society,
there are fewer strains on his nerves and his ambitions
and
his
himself
economic
up to
his
responsibilities,
he
is
paternal instincts.
freer to give
Thus
society the adjustment between biological forces,
which was satisfactory in
begins to
show a lack
of
earliest
harmony
and
a
is
source of family conflict, in
social
childhood,
later on.
Melanesian society, the harmonious relations
Father -right, we have seen,
in our
In the
persist.
to a great extent
that
it
grants
to
the father social claims and prerogatives not com-
mensurate with his biological propensities, nor with the personal affection which he can feel for and arouse in his children.
INFANTILE SEXUALITY
T^RAVERSING
the same ground as Freud and the
psycho-analysts,
I
have yet tried to keep clear
of the subject of sex, partly in order to
the sociological aspect in to avoid of
moot
my
emphasize
account, partly in order
theoretical distinctions as to the nature
mother-and-child attachment or the libido '
this stage, as the children begin to play
and develop an
accessible
to
independently
interest in the surrounding
people, sexuality
makes
outside
its first
life.^
work and
appearance in forms
sociological
directly affecting family
But at
' .
A
and
observation
careful observer of
European children, and one who has^not forgotten
his
own
childhood, has to recognize that at an early age,
say,
between three and
four, there arises in
a special sort of interest and curiosity.
world of lawful, normal and nice '
^
The reader who
'
Besides the
things, there opens
interested in infantile sexuality
is
them
and child
psychology should also consult A. Moll, Das Sexualleben des Kindes Havelock Ellis's Studies in the Psychology of Sex (1919 ed., (1908) pp. 13 seqq., also vol. i, 1910 ed., pp. 36 seqq. and 235 seqq. and passim). The books of Ploss-Renz, Das Kind in Brauch und Sitte der Volker (Leipzig, 1911-12); Charlotte Biihler, Das Seelenleben des Jugendlichen (1925) and the works of William Stern on Child Psychology are also important. ;
;
33
D
'
SEX AND REPRESSION
34
up a world
of shame-faced desires, clandestine interests
The two
and subterranean impulses. things,
'
decent
categories of
and indecent ', pure and impure '
'
'
'
destined to remain
begin to crystallize,
categories
throughout
some people the
In
life.
',
'
'
'
indecent
becomes completely suppressed, and the right values of decency
become
hypertrophied
virtue of the puritan,
into
or the
the
virulent
more repulsive
still
hypocrisy of the conventionally moral. Or the decent '
altogether smothered through glut in pornographic
is
satisfaction,
and the other category develops into
a complete pruriency of mind, not
than hypocritical
'
virtue
'
less
itself.
In the second stage of childhood which considering, that
is
according to
my
we
round
exhibitionism
interests
and games
of reproduction.
indecent
witii
often associated with cruelty.
between the sexes, and
excretory
in
now
'
indecent functions,
exposure,
hardly differentiates
It
is little
are
scheme from
an age of about four to six years, the centres
repulsive
interested in the act
Anyone who has
lived for a long
time among peasants and knows intimately their child-
hood
will recognize that this state of affairs exists as
thing normal, though not open. classes things
^
seem to be
That conscientious
similar.*
sociologist, Zola,
Among the working Among the higher
has provided us with rich
material on the subject, entirely in agreement with tions.
a
my own observa-
''
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX classes
'
indecencies
'
much more
are
35
suppressed, but
not very different. Observations in these social strata,
which would be more
difficult
than among peasants,
should, however, be urgently carried out for pedagogical,
moral and eugenic reasons, and suitable methods research
of
confirm to an
would,
results
extraordinary
Freud and
assertions of
How
The
devised.
I
degree some
think, of
the
his school.^
does the newly awakened infantile sexuaUty
or infantile indecency influence the relation to the
family
In the division between things
?
and indecent '
',
and remain
by the
wholly
within
the
category,
first
mind absolutely untouched
in the child's
indecent.'
'
decent
the parents, and especially the mother,
included
are
'
The
feeling
might be aware of any prurient
that
the mother
infantile
extremely distasteful to the child, and there
is
play
is
a strong
disinclination to allude in her presence or to speak
with her about any sexual matters.
who
also
is
kept strictly outside the
The '
father,
indecent
category, is, moreover, regarded as the moral authority
whom ^
these thoughts and pastimes would offend.
Freud's contentions of the normal occurrence of premature between the sexes, of anal-eroticism
sexuality, of little differentiation
of genital interest are, according to my observations, In a recent article (Zeitschrift ]ur Psycho-Analyse, 1923), Freud has somewhat modified his previous view, and affirms, without giving arguments, that children at this stage have, after all, already
and absence correct.
a
'
genital
'
interest.
With
this I
cannot agree.
SEX AND REPRESSION
36
For the
'
indecent
'
always carries with
it
a sense of
guilt.i
Freud and the psycho-analjrtic school have
laid great
on the sexual rivalry between mother and
stress
opinion
and son
father
daughter, is
that
the
respectively.
My own
between mother and
rivalry
At any
daughter does not begin at this early stage. rate,
I
have never observed any
relations
The
it.
between father and son are more complex.
Although, as
have
I
said, the little
boy has no thoughts,
or impulses towards his
desires
traces of
mother which he
himself would feel belong to the category of the 'indecent', there
can be no doubt that a young
organism reacts
sexually
with the mother.
2
A
to
close
bodily
contact
well-known piece of advice
^ The attitude of the modern man and woman is rapidly changing. At present we studiously enlighten our children, and keep sex neatly prepared for them. In the first place, however, we must remember that we are dealing here with a minority even among '
'
'
'
the British and American " intelligentsia ". In the second place, I am not at all certain whether the bashfulness and awkward attitude of children towards their parents in matters of sex will be to any great extent overcome by this method of treatment. There seems to exist a general tendency even among adults to eliminate the dramatic, upsetting, and mysterious emotional elements out of any stable relationship based on every-day intercourse. Even among unrepressed Trobrianders the parent is never the essentially '
'
the confidant in matters of sex. It it is
to
make any
is
remarkable how
much
easier
delicate or shameful confession to those friends
and acquaintances who are not too intimately connected with our daily hfe.
Since this was first written in 1921, I have changed my views The statement that 'a young organism reacts sexually to close bodily contact with the mother appears to me *
on this subject.
'
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX by
given
young mothers
old gossips to
communities
is
37
in peasant
to the effect that boys above the age
of three should sleep separately from the mother.
The occurrence
of infantile erections is well
in these communities, as clings to the
mother
is
known boy
also the fact that the
in a different
way from
the
girl.
That the father and the young male child have a
component
under such conditions
of sexual rivalry
seems probable, even to an outside sociological observer.
Among
The psycho-analysts maintain it categorically.
the wealthier classes crude conflicts arise more seldom, if
ever,
refined It
but they arise in imagination and in a more
though perhaps not
less insidious form.
must be noted that at
begins to
show a
this stage
different character
when the
child
and temperament
according to sex, the parents' feelings are differentiated
between sons and daughters.
The
who
son his successor, the one
is
father sees in the
to replace
the family lineage and in the household. therefore all the feelings in
two
more
critical,
directions
:
and
if
of mental or physical deficiency,
him
He becomes
this influences his
the boy shows signs if
he
is
not up to the
type of the ideal in which the father believes, he
be a source of bitter disappointment and
On
the other
in
will
hostility.
hand, even at this stage, a certain
now absurd. I am glad I may use this strong word, having written the absurd statement myself. I have set forth what appears to me the adequate analysis of this phase in infantile psychology later on, Part IV, Chapter IX.
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; SEX AND REPRESSION
38
amount
of rivalry, the resentment of future super-
session,
and the melancholy of the waning generation Repressed in both cases, this
lead again to hostility.
hostility hardens the father against the son
by reaction a
and provokes
The mother,
response in hostile feelings.
on the other hand, has no grounds
negative
for
sentiments, and has an additional admiration for the
man
son as a
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
daughter hardly
The
to be.
father's feeling towards the
a repetition of himself in a feminine form to evoke a tender emotion,
fails
Thus
also to flatter his vanity.
and perhaps
social factors
mix
with biological and make the father cUng more tenderly to the daughter than to the son, while with the mother it
But
the reverse.
is
must be noted that an
it
attraction to the offspring of the other sex, because is of
the other sex,
In Melanesia, of sexual
could
an altogether
do not essentially
But be
I
clandestine
functions
have
called
subterranean in
find
or
differ,
failed to find
infantile
world
in
pastimes
different
type
That the biological
development in the child.
impulses doubt.
not necessarily sexual attraction.
is
we
it
any traces
indecencies,
which
beyond
seems
children
of
or
what of
a
indulge
centring
round excretory
The
subject naturally
exhibitionism.
presents certain difficulties of observation, for
it
is
hard to enter into any personal communication with a savage child, and
if
there were a world of indecent
things as amongst ourselves,
it
would be as
futile
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX to inquire
about
it
39
from an average grown-up native
as from a conventional mother, father, or nurse in
But there
our society.
is
one circumstance which
makes matters so
entirely
natives that there
no danger
with them there
this is that
censure,
is
no moral reprobation
of the genital
later stage
among
different of
these
making a mistake
:
no repression, no
is
of infantile sexuality
type when it comes to light at a somewhat
than the one we are now considering
at about the age of five or six. earlier indecency, this
So
if
could be as
there were easily
any
observed
as the later genital stage of sexual plays.
How there '
is
can we then explain
no period
anal-erotic
this
better
'
interest
why among
what Freud
of ?
when we
calls
'
savages
pre-genital',
We shall be able to understand discuss the
sexuality of the
next stage in the child's development, a sexuality in
which native Melanesian children
from our own.
differ essentially
VI
APPRENTICESHIP TO LIFE
TX 7E
now on
enter
the third stage of childhood,
commencing between the ages At
same
own games,
age, with
whom
it
and seven.
begins to feel independent,
this period a child
to create its
of five
to seek for associates of the
has a tendency to roam about
unencumbered by grown-up people.
This
when play begins
definite occupa-
tions
and
serious
more
to pass into
the time
life interests.
In Europe,
Let us follow our parallel at this stage. entrance into school or,
some
is
among
the uneducated classes,
sort of preliminary apprenticeship to
an economic
occupation removes the child from the influence of the family.
The boy or
their exclusive
girl
lose
to
some extent
attachment to the mother.
With the
boy, there frequently takes place at this period a transference of sentiment to a substitute for the
time being
passionate tenderness
is
mother,
who
regarded with some of the
felt for
the mother, but with no
other feelings.
Such transference must not be con-
fused with the
much
boys to
fall
in love with
At the same time, there
later
tendency of adolescent
women arises 40
older than themselves.
a desire for independence
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX from the all-possessive intimacy of maternal which makes the child withhold
Among
from the parent.
classes, the process of
interest,
absolute confidence
the peasants and lower
emancipation from the mother
than
takes place earlier
its
41
the higher,
in
When
similar in all essentials.
but
the mother
is
it
deeply
attached to the child, especially to the boy, she apt to
feel
amount
a certain
This usually
painful
and
its
violent.
show a
even more
in
makes the wrench only more
The children on the Pacific
is
and resentment
and to put obstacles
at this emancipation
way.
of jealousy
is
coral beaches of the
similar tendency.
clearly,
for
Western
This appears there
the absence of compulsory
education and of any strict discipline at this age allows a
much
freer play to the natural inclinations
of infantile nature. is
in
Melanesia,
On
the part of the mother there
or anxiety at the child's
and here we
no jealous resentment
however,
new-found independence,
see the influence of the lack of
any deep,
educational interest between mother and child. this stage, the children in the
At
Trobriand archipelago
begin to form a small juvenile community within the community.
They roam about
in bands, play
on
distant beaches or in secluded parts of the jungle, join with other small
communities of children from
neighbouring villages, and in
obey the commands of their
all
this,
though they
child-leaders, they are
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; SEX AND REPRESSION
42
almost
to interfere with
any
the
of
elders'
The parents never try to keep them back,
authority.
to
independent
completely
them At
routine.
any way or to bind them
in
of course, the family
first,
still
retains a considerable hold over the child, but the
process
emancipation progresses gradually and
of
constantly in an untrammelled, natural manner. In this there
is
a great difference between European
where the child often passes from the
conditions,
intimacy of the family to the cold discipline of the school or other preliminary training, and the Melanesian state of affairs where the process of emancipation is
gradual, free and pleasailt.
And now what about
the father at this stage
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;here again
?
excluding certain modern
In our society
America
and
phases
of
he
represents the principle of authority within
still
family
the family.
Outside,
at the preliminary of
peasants
at
in the
school,
set
to
do,
In
the
higher
classes
at
child
is
either
the
who
wields
the
this
stage,
the
it
father in person or his substitute
power.
workshop,
manual labour which the
often
is
Britain
in
life
very important process of conscious formation of paternal authority and
The
place.
what father's
family,
child
had
it
and
his
begins
guessed
established
the father
of
now
and
ideal
comprehend
to
felt
takes
before
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; the
authority as the head of the
economic influence.
The
ideal of his
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX wisdom,
infallibility,
and
in varying degrees
and might
justice,
Now the role
and moral teaching.
an easy one, and to maintain daily
life
a
is
very
especially for one
it
of
in reUgious
an ideal
is
never
in the intimacy
of
performance indeed,
difficult
whose bad tempers and
follies
are
Thus no sooner
not repressed by any discipline.
is
it
begins to decompose.
child feels at first only a
vague malaise at his
the father ideal formed than
The
usually
ways inculcated
in different
by the mother or the nurse
in the child
is
43
father's
bad temper or weakness, a
fear of his wrath,
a dim feeling of injustice, perhaps some shame when the father has a really bad outburst. father-sentiment
is
formed,
Soon the typical of
full
contradictory
emotions, a mixture of reverence, contempt, affection
and
tenderness and fear.
dislike,
It is at this period
of childhood that the social influence
makes
institutions
itself felt in
towards the male parent.
due to patriarchal
the child's attitude
Between the boy and
father the rivalries of successor
his
and superseded, and
the mutual jealousies described in the previous section, crystallize
elements
more
distinctly
the
of
dominant than
Among the
and make the negative
father-to-son
relation
more pre-
in the case of father-to-daughter.
lower classes, the process of the idealiza-
tion of the father is cruder but not less important.
As
I
have already
household
is
said, the father in a typical peasant
openly a tyrant.
The mother acquiesces
SEX AND REPRESSION
44 in his
supremacy and imparts the attitude to her
who
children,
reverence and at the same time fear
the strong and brutal force embodied in their father.
Here also a sentiment composed is
of ambivalent emotion
formed, with a distinct preference of the father
for his female children.
What
the father's role in Melanesia
is
be said about
it
at
this
He
stage.
continues to
befriend the children, to help them, to teach
what they it is
like
and as much
as they like.
true, are less interested in
prefer,
father
him
them
Children,
at this stage
on the whole, their small comrades. is
need
Little
?
and
But the
always there as a helpful adviser, half play-
mate, half protector.
Yet at
this period the principle of tribal
authority, the submission to constraint
law and
and
to the
prohibition of certain desirable things enters the of a
young
or boy.
girl
are represented father,
But
this
life
law and constraint
by quite another person than the
by the mother's brother, the male head
of the
He it is who actually who indeed makes ample
family in a matriarchal society. wields
the potestas and
use of
it.
His authority, though closely parallel to that of the father
with
it.
ourselves,
is
not exactly identical
First of all his influence is introduced into
the child's father.
among life
Then
much
later
than that of the European
again, he never enters the intimacy
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX of family
life,
45
but lives in another hut and often in a
different village, for, since marriage is patrilocal in the
Trobriands, his sister and her children have their abode
husband and
in the village of the
power
is
He
whether boy or
girl,
brings into the
two elements and
prohibition
duty,
especially into the
which are
of the child,
life
first
:
his
cannot
it
in those small matters
most irksome.
of
a distance and
exercised from
become oppressive
Thus
father.
constraint
:
of
all,
that
secondly,
of the boy, the elements of
life
ambition, pride and social values, half of that, in fact,
which makes
life
worth living
The constraint comes
in,
in
for the Trobriander.
so
far
as
he begins
to direct the boy's occupations, to require certain of his services
and
and to teach him some
prohibitions.
Many
inculcated into the boy (mother's brother) real authority
A boy of six to
parents, but the kada
always held up to him as the
is
behind the will
have already been
of these
by the
of the tribal laws
rules.
be solicited by his mother's brother
come on an expedition,
to begin
some work
gardens, to assist in the carrying of crops.
out these
activities,
in his maternal uncle's village
and together with other members learns that he
clan
;
is
;
of his clan, the
boy
contributing to the hutura of his
he begins to
and own people
in the
In carrying
feel
that this
is his
to learn the traditions,
legends of his clan.
The
child
at
this
own
village
myths and stage also
46
SEX AND REPRESSION
frequently
co-operates
interesting
to
with his father,
is
it
note the difference in the attitude
The
he has toward the two elders.
remains his intimate assist
and
he
;
likes to
him and learn from him
father
still
work with him,
but he reahzes more
;
and more that such co-operation
based on goodwill
is
and not on law, and that the pleasure derived from must be
its
own
reward, but that the glory of
The
to a clan of strangers.
child also sees his
it
it
goes
mother
receiving orders from her brother, accepting favours
from him, treating him with the greatest reverence, crouching before him like a commoner to a chief.
He
gradually begins to understand that he
is
his
maternal uncle's successor, and that he will also be
a master over his
sisters,
by a
already separated
is
from
whom
at this time he
taboo forbidding
social
any intimacy.
The maternal uncle
who should be
is,
like the father
model to be imitated in the most
of the elements,
among
He
the
Thus we
future.
though not
difficult in
Melanesians
has the power, he
us,
and who must be made the
pleased,
the father's r61e so
among
held up to him as the person
idealized to the boy,
in
all,
see that
which make
our society, are vested the
is idealized,
mother's to
him the
brother.
children
and the mother are subjected, while the father is entirely reUeved of all these odious prerogatives and characteristics.
But the mother's brother introduces
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX new elements which make
the child to certain
more
bigger,
47
interesting,
and
greater
of
life
appeal
social ambition, traditional glory, pride in his lineage
and
kinship, promises of future wealth, power,
and
social status. It
must be
European complex
realized that at
child
to
starts
when our way in our
the time
find
its
social relations, the Melanesian girl or
boy
also begins to grasp the principle of kinship which is
the main foundation of the social order.
These
principles cut across the intimacy of family life
and
up
rearrange for the child the social world which
to
now
of
family,
consisted for further
The
community.
distinguish above
To
veyola.
mother,
his
uncle and
himself.
child
now
brothers
and
The women
of his clan
related
his real
kinsmen,
first
place his
his
maternal
These are people who
same substance or the
'
same body
to obey,
to
'
as
co-operate
work, war and personal quarrels.
and
tabooed sexually for him.
this
of
sisters,
kinsmen.
assist in
By
village
learns that he has to
consists
The men he has
of
and
neighbours
these belong in the
with and to
consists
the extended
circles
and across these groups two main
all their
are of the
of
family,
The one
categories. his
him
of his kinship are strictly
The other
the stran^gers or
name are called all by matrilineal ties,
'
social category
outsiders
those people or
',
tomakava.
who
are not
who do not belong
to
SEX AND REPRESSION
48 the
same
father
and
But
clan.
group comprises also the
this
his relations,
male and female, and the
women whom he may marry have love
affairs.
Now
or with
these people,
whom and
he
may
especially
the father, stand to him in a very close personal relation which, however,
and moraUty.
is
by law
entirely ignored
Thus we have on the one
side the
consciousness of identity and kinship associated with social ambitions
and
pride,
and sexual prohibition relation to the father
;
and
but also with constraint
and on the other,
in the
his relatives, free friendship
and natural sentiment
as well as sexual liberty, but
no personal identity or
traditional bonds.
VII
THE SEXUALITY OF LATER CHILDHOOD
TT TE
now
pass
to the problem of sexual
third period call
it,
which
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;the
life
later childhood, as
in the
we might
covering the stage of free play and movement,
from about
lasts
five or
six
till
puberty.
I
kept the discussion of sex separate from that of the social
influences
period of child
when
life,
and
with the
dealing I
shall
previous
do the same here, so
as to bring out clearly the respective contributions of
organism and society. In modern Europe, according to Freud, there sets
in
at
this
age a very curious phenomenon
regression of sexuaUty, in the
a period of latency, a
the lull
development of sexual functions and impulses.
What makes
this latency period especially
Freudian scheme of neuroses
in the
which
:
is
associated with
it,
is
the curtain of complete
oblivion which falls at this period
and which
the reminiscences of infantile sexuahty.
enough,
this
of Freud's
is
important
the amnesia
obliterates
Remarkably
important and interesting contention not endorsed by other students.
instance, Moll, in his
memoir on 49
For
infantile sexuality
B
SEX AND REPRESSION
50
very thorough and competent contribution)/ makes
(a
no mention of any
lull in
sexual development.
contrary, his account implies a steady
On
the
and gradual
increase of sexuality in the child, the curve rising in a continuous
manner without any kink.
It
is
remarkable to 'find that Freud himself at times appears
Thus
to vacillate.
of all the periods of childhood
this
one has no clear and explicit chapter devoted
to
and
it
in one or
two places Freud even withdraws
about
his contention
its
Yet,
existence.^
affirm on the basis of material derived
if
I
may
from personal
knowledge of well-educated schoolboys, the latency period invariably sets in
and
lasts
at
about the sixth year
from two to four years.
interest in indecencies
colours which they
flags,
How
interest
this
time
the lurid yet alluring
had fade away, and they are
repressed and forgotten while
take up the
During
new
things arise to
and energy.
we to explain the divergency in Freud's own views as weU as the ignoring of the facts by other are
students of sex It
*
is
clear
?
that
we do not
deal
here with
a
A. Moll, Das Sexualleben des Kindes, 1908.
The latency period
is frequently mentioned, for instance, in Drei Abhandlungen, 5th edition, pp. 40, 44, 64 Vorlesungen, 1922, p. 374. But there is no special treatment of it in any of these books. Again, we read, " Die Latenzzeit kann auch entfallen. Sie braucht â&#x20AC;˘
;
keine Unterbrechung der Sexualbetatigung, der Sexualinteressen
mit sich zu bringen," Vorlesungen,
loc. cit.
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX phenomenon deeply rooted but with one largely social factors.
if
we
If
in
man's organic nature,
not wholly determined by
turn to a comparative survey
of the various layers of society,
that
difficulty
among
pronounced. cast
among
perceive without especially
much
is
In order to see matters clearly,
back to the previous period
genital sexuaUty
saw
we
the lower classes,
the latency period
peasants,
in Chapter
and
V
51
how
see
let
of infantile
the two
less
link up.
us
pre-
We
that in the lower as well as in the
higher strata there exists at an early age this strong interest in the 'indecent'.
however,
it
Among
appears somewhat later and has a shghtly
different character.
Let us compare once more the
sources of 'anal-eroticism', as
among
peasant children,
it is
called
by Freud,
the children of the lower and higher classes.^
In the nursery of the weU-to-do baby, the natural functions,
the
interest
in
are
excretion,
encouraged, and then suddenly stopped. or mother,
who up
at
first
The nurse
to a certain point tries to stimulate
the performance, praises the prompt execution and
shows the
results, discovers at
the child takes too to play in a
much
a certain moment that
interest in
it
and begins
manner that to the grown-up appears
unclean, though to the child
it is
perfectly natural.
^ I would not now use the ugly neologism anal-eroticism ', but as long as a term is defined there is no harm in borrowing it from a dctrine which is being discussed. '
SEX AND REPRESSION
52
Then the nursery authority makes
an
it
and
offence,
The
repressed.
steps in, slaps the child,
and the
interest
is
violently
child grows up, the reticences, frowns,
begin
artificialities
to
surround
the
natural
and mysterious
functions with clandestine interest attraction.
Those who remember from their own childhood
how
strongly
hints
and sous-entendus
meaning
is
such
From
'
observations
as from
of
felt
is
and how well
its
understood by the child, recognize that
category of
the
atmosphere
repressive
a
memory,
indecent of
it is
'
is
children,
moreover,
Among
becoming
how
easy to ascertain
and how soon the children catch up of elders,
little prigs,
by
created
elders.
as
well
quickly
artificial attitudes
moralists,
and snobs.
peasants, conditions are quite different.
The
children are instructed in sexual matters at an early
age
they cannot help seeing sexual performances
:
of their parents
and other
relatives
;
they listen to
quarrels in which whole lists of sexual obscenities
and
technicalities are recited.
They have
domestic animals, whose propagation in is
to deal with
all its details
a matter of great concern to the whole household
and
is
freely
and minutely discussed.
Since they
are deeply steeped in things natural, they feel less
incUned to amuse themselves by doing in a clandestine
manner that which enjoy openly.
in
many ways
The children
they can do and
of the
working classes
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX stand perhaps
Hardly
midway between
the two extremes.
in contact with animals, they receive,
other hand,
53
an even greater amount
on the
bedroom
of
demonstration and public-house instruction.
What
the result of these essential differences
is
between well-to-do and proletarian children of is
all,
the
fostered
much
less
'
First
?
indecency which among bourgeois children '
by the repression of the natural pronounced in the lower
curiosities is
classes,
and comes
up only later where indecency
is
with ideas of genital sexuality.
In the higher classes,
when the itself
out,
curiosity about
already associated
indecencies
and with the leaving
has
played
of the nursery
interests in life crop up, the period of latency sets in
and these new
interests
new now
absorb the child,
while the absence of knowledge which
is
usual
among
children of the educated prevents the genital interest setting in so early.
In the lower classes this knowledge and early curiosity in genital matters are present at the
same
time and establish a continuity, a steady development
from the early period to that of
full
sexual puberty.
The nature of social influences collaborates with these facts to produce a
much
greater breach of continuity
in the life of a well-to-do child. life
up
he has
While
to the age of six v;as devoted to
now suddenly
The peasant
child
to learn
his
whole
amusement,
and to do school-work.
had already previously been helping
SEX AND REPRESSION
54
with the cooking or looking after the younger children, or running after the geese
there
no breach of continuity in
is
At
and sheep.
this time,
his Ufe.
Thus, while the early childish interest in the indecent
awakens earUer and
and proletarian
form in the peasant
in another
child,
less
is
it
clandestine, less
associated with guilt, hence less immoral, less erotic
sex.
It
anal-
more
passes
and with more continuity into early sexual
easily
play,
and more attached to
'
*
and the period
absent
or, at
any
of latency is almost completely
rate,
much
pronounced.
less
This
explains why psycho-analysis, which deals with neurotic well-to-do people, has led to the discovery of this period,
while the general medical observations of Dr. Moll did
not detect
But
if
it.
there could be
any doubt about the
of this difference between
the classes
cause, such doubt should disappear
to Melanesia.
Here certainly the
facts are different classes.
As
saw in Chapter V, the early sexual indecencies,
clandestine games it
its
when we turn
from those found among our educated
we
facts
and about
and
interests are absent.
In fact,
might be said that for these children the categories
of decent-indecent, pure-impure,
do not
same reasons which make
distinction
and
less
this
The
exist.
weaker
important among our peasants than among
our bourgeois act even more strongly and directly
among
the Melanesians.
In Melanesia there
is
no
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX taboo on sex in general veils
a
is
no putting
of
any
on natural functions, certainly not in the case of
When we
child.
run
there
;
55
about
naked,
that
consider that
their
children
these
functions
excretory
are treated openly and naturally, that there
is
no
general taboo on bodily parts or on nakedness in
when we
further consider that small children
at the age of three
and four are beginning to be aware
general
;
of the existence of such a thing as genital sexuality,
and
of the fact that this will be their pleasure quite
soon just as other infantile plays will be
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
can see
^we
that social factors rather than biological explain the
between the two
difference
The stage which
I
societies.
am now describing in
Melanesia
that which corresponds to our latency period stage of infantile independence,
and
girls
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
is
the
where small boys
play together in a sort of juvenile republic.
Now, one
of
the main interests of these children
consists of sexual pastijnes.
are initiated
by each
At an early age children
other, or sometimes
by a
older companion, into the practices of sex.
slightly
Naturally
at this stage they are unable to carry out the act
properly, but they content themselves with all sorts of
games
elders,
in
which they are
and thus they can
their sensuality directly
left
quite at liberty
by their
satisfy their curiosity
and without
and
disguise.
There can be no doubt that the dominating interest of such
games
is
what Freud would
call
'genital',
'
SEX AND REPRESSION
56
by the
that they are largely determined
imitate the acts elders,
and that
and
among
one which
this period is
completely absent from the in Europe,
and which
life
amusements
is
and
almost
of better-class children
exists only to a small degree
When
peasants and proletarians.
of these
desire to
interests of elder children
speaking
of the children, the natives will
frequently allude to
them
{mwaygini kwayta).
Or
as
'
copulation
else
that
said
is
it
amusement they
are playing at marriage. It
must not be imagined that
Many do
not lend themselves at
some particular pastimes
are
and
girl
'
playing
build a
little
all
to
it.
sexual.
But there
of small children in
sex plays the predominant part. are fond of
games are
all
husband and shelter
which
Melanesian children
and
A boy
wife.'
call it their
home
;
there they pretend to assume the functions of husband
and
wife,
and amongst those
of
course the
important one of sexual intercourse.
most
At other times,
a group of children will go for a picnic where the entertainment consists of eating, fighting, and making love.
Or they
trade
exchange,
will
carry out a mimic ceremonial
ending up with sexual
activities.
Crude sensual pleasure alone does not seem to
them
;
in
such more elaborate games
it
satisfy
must be
blended with some imaginative and romantic interest.
A very important is
point about this infantile sexuality
the attitude of the elder generation towards
it.
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX As
have
I
the
least
said, the parents
Generally
reprehensible.
speak jestingly about
it
Never would they dream
as in
take
do
is
it
to
of the child world.
of interfering or frowning
disapproval, provided the children is,
will
it
to one another, discussing
and comedies
of discretion, that
they
The most they
entirely for granted.
the love tragedies
do not look upon
57
show a due amount
do not perform their amorous
games in the house, but go
away somewhere apart
in the bush.
But above
all
the children are
left entirely
Not only
selves in their love affairs.
parental interference, but rarely,
about that a
man
or a
interest in children,
woman
if
is
to them-
there no
ever, does
it
come
take a perverse sexual
and certainly they would never
be seen to mix themselves up in the games in this Violation
role.
person
of
who played
children
is
imknown, and a
sexually with a child would be
thought ridiculous and disgusting.
An
extremely important feature in
relations of children is the brother
already mentioned. first
From an
and
early age,
the
sexual
sister taboo,
when the
girl
puts on her grass petticoat, brothers and sisters
of the
same mother must be separated from each
other, in obedience to the strict taboo
which enjoins
that there shall be no intimate relations between them.
Even
earlier,
when they
first
can move about and walk,
they play in different groups.
Later on they never
SEX AND REPRESSION
58
consort together socially on a free footing, and above there
all
must never be the sUghtest suspicion
interest of one of
Although there
them
in the love affairs of the other.
children, not even quite a small
associate sex with his sisters,
any sexual
it is
This
the highest degree
bad form to speak to a brother about
love affairs, or vice versa.
make
still less
allusion or joke in their presence.
continues right through Hfe, and of
an
comparative freedom in pla5dng
is
and language between boy would
of
his sister's
The imposition
of this
taboo leads to an early breaking up of family hfe, since the boys
and
girls, in
order to avoid each other,
must leave the parental home and go elsewhere.
With
all this,
we can
which obtains in
perceive the enormous difference
the
juvenile
sexuality
stage of later childhood between ourselves
Melanesians. classes,
there
and a period the
at
this
and the
While amongst ourselves, in the educated is
at
this
time a break of sexuality
of latency with amnesia, in Melanesia
extremely early beginning of genital interest
leads to a type of sexuaUty entirely
unknown among
us.
From
will
continuously though gradually develop,
this time, the sexuality of the Melanesians
reaches puberty.
On
till
the condition that one taboo
it
is
respected in the strictest and most complete manner, society gives complete free play to juvenile sexuahty.
VIII
PUBERTY A T an
age varjdng with climate and race and
stretching from about the ninth to the fifteenth year, the child enters
puberty
is
not a
upon the age
moment
of puberty.
For
or a turning point but a more
or less prolonged period of development during which
the sexual apparatus, the whole system of internal secretions
and the organism
We
recast.
in general are entirely
cannot consider puberty as a conditio sine
qua non of sexual interest or even of sexual since non-nubile girls can copulate
are
known
penis.
to have erections
activities,
and immature boys
and to practise immissio
But undoubtedly the age
of puberty
must be
regarded as the most important landmark in the sexual history of the individual.
Sex is, moreover, so intimately bound up at this stage with the other aspects of shall treat sexual
divide
them
stages.
In
as
and
we
life
that in this chapter
social matters together
we
and not
did in the case of the two previous
comparing
Melanesia with our
own
here
the
society,
Trobrianders it
is
of
important to
note that these savages have no initiation rites at puberty.
While
this will
remove one item 59
of
extreme
SEX AND REPRESSION
6o
importance from our discussion,
on
will allow us
it
the other hand to draw the comparison between
and matriliny more
patriliny
most
in
since
and
clearly
savage
other
societies
closely,
initiation
ceremonies completely mask or modify this period.
own
In our of the
part
society,
boy and
we have
of the girl, for at this point the
company completely
a man's
life,
to speak separately
two
matters.
In
puberty means the acquisition of
full
sexual
in
mental powers as well as bodily maturity and the final
formation of the sexual characters.
new manliness
his
whole relation to
life
With
his
in general
changes as deeply as his relation to sexual matters
and to last,
we
can
observe
phenomenon which mother,
sister,
adolescent to
show
an
extremely
of our civiHzed
at the time of puberty
The
brutality towards his sisters all his
typical
communities begins
an extreme embarrass-
his mother, affects scorn
comrades of
interesting
greatly affects his attitude to his
or other female relatives.
bo}''
ment towards
his
Beginning with this
his position in the family.
and
and a
certain
ashamed before
is
female relatives.
Who
of us
does not remember the pangs of ineffable shame
when, jauntily going along with our school fellows,
we met suddenly our mother, our
aunt, our sister,
or even our girl cousin and were obliged to greet her.
There was a feeling of intense
caught in flagrante
delicto.
Some boys
guilt, of
being
tried to ignore
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX
6i
the embarrassing encounter, others more brave blushed
crimson and saluted, but everyone
shadow on
his
position,
social
felt
manliness and independence.
an outrage on his
as that associated with
here
felt
was a
it
Without entering into
we can
the psychology of this phenomenon, the shame and confusion
that
of the
is
any breach
of
see that
same type
good manners.
This newly acquired manliness affects deeply the boy's attitude towards the world, his whole Weltan-
He begins to have his independent opinions, personality and his own honour, to maintain his
schauung. his
position towards authority
This
is
and
and
son, another reckoning
At
of the father ideal.
father
is
up and a new
this point it
found out to be a fool or a
a hypocrite or an of for
intellectual leadership.
a new stage in the relation between father
life,
and
in
influencing the
come together
'
old fogey
any case
boy even again.
If
'.
He
loses the if
'
is
testing
succumbs bounder
',
if
the
to be
usually disposed
chance of effectively
in later
life
the two should
on the other hand the father
can stand the extremely severe scrutiny of this epoch there for
is
life.
a great chance of his surviving as an ideal
The
reverse
is
also true, of course, for the
father as well keenly examines his son at this epoch,
and
is
equally critical as to whether the boy comes
up
own ideal of what his future successor should be. The new attitude towards sex, the recrystallization at
to his
puberty, exerts a great influence on the boy's attitude
SEX AND REPRESSION
62
not only to his father, but to his mother as well.
The educated boy only now
fully realizes the biological
nature of the bond between his parents and himself. If
he deeply loves and worships his mother, as
usually the case, and his father,
if
then the idea of his bodily origin from his
parent's sexual intercourse, though at
a
rift
is
he can continue to ideaUze
making
first
in his mental world, can be dealt with.
on
If
the other hand he scorns and hates his father, be
it
unavowedly as so often happens, the idea brings about a permanent defilement of the mother and a besmirching of things most dear to him.
The new manhood
influences above all the boy's
Mentally he
sexual outlook.
is
ready for knowledge,
physiologically ready for applying
he receives his
it
lessons in sex at this time,
first
some form or other
and
starts sexual activities, not
often, probably, in the normal, regular
frequently
through
pollutions.
This
dividing
the roads
of
Usually
in Hfe.
masturbation
epoch
is
for
in
in
so
manner, but nocturnal
or
many
respects
the
boy.
Either
the
the
newly
awakened
strong
temperament and to easy morals, absorbs
him completely, ever in a
wave
sex
carries
it
off
him
off
his
of over-mastering
else other interests
to stave
appeaUng
impulse,
feet
to
a
once for
sensuality
;
or
and moraUty are strong enough
partially or
even
completely.
long as he preserves an ideal of chastity and
is
As able
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX to fight for
the leverage,
it,
is
there for the lifting
In this,
of the sexual impulses to a higher level.
the temptations are largely determined
course,
of
by the
The
and the mode
social setting
racial
morals and
of life of the boy.
characteristics of a commimity, its
its
code of
cultural values establish great differences
within European civilization.
some
63
countries,
is
it
In certain classes of
usual for the boy to succumb
to the disintegrating forces of easy sexuahty. others, he can take his chance.
society relieves
him
by la5dng down
In
In others, again,
of a great deal of responsibility
rules of
stem morality.
In his relations to persons of the other sex, there
appears at
something parallel to his attitude
first
towards mother and
and polarity
sister
a certain embarrassment,
;
and
of attraction
The woman
repulsion.
who, he feels, can exercise a deep influence on him alarms
him and
fills
him with
suspicion.
He
senses in her a
danger to his awakening independence and manliness.
At
new
this stage also the
fusion of tenderness with
sexuaUty which comes about towards the end of puberty mixes up tenderness
Imagination
with
the
and
about horrible
infantile
memories
new elements
especially
confusion
dream
maternal
of
of
sexuaUty.
fantasies
and play strange
bring tricks
on the boy's mind.^ ^
This conception
Chapter IX.
is
more
fully
elaborated below.
Part IV,
;
SEX AND REPRESSION
64
All this refers
more
especially to the
to the higher, well-to-do classes.
boy belonging
we compare
If
the
peasant or proletarian youth with him, we see that the essential elements are the same, though there
perhaps picture
less
individual
more
is
Thus there
is
also a period of affective crudeness
now
up
is
especially notice-
The quarrels with the
as a rule with an increased violence
that the boy realizes his
now
position as a successor,
own
forces
and
that he feels a
and a new ambition
possession
for
which
sister
young peasant.
father crop
and the general
variation
sober.
towards mother and able in a
is
own
his
new greed
for
influence.
Often a regular fight for supremacy begins at this time. In sexual matters there this
reacts
less
is
directly
not as violent a
on the parental
and
crisis
relation.
But the main outlines are the same.
The crisis
girl
at
of the educated classes goes through a
her
menstruation
first
which,
while
it
encroaches on liberty and compUcates hfe, adds to its
mysterious attraction and is usually eagerly awaited.
But puberty
is
less of a
turning point socially to a
she continues to live at
home
or to carry on her
education at a boarding school, but
and her training are life
窶馬ot
account.
in
all
her occupations
harmony with ordinary family
taking the modern,
Her aim
girl
professional
girl
One
in life is to await marriage.
important element in her relation to the family
into
is
the
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX rivalry between
65
mother and daughter which often
How
in at this time.
often
in a decided, undisguised
it
form
there can be no doubt that
makes ^
is
its
sets
appearance
hard to say, but
introduces a distorted
it
element into the typical relations of the ordinary
At
family.
this
time,
also,
and not
there
earlier,
enters a special tenderness into the relations between
father
and daughter, which not infrequently becomes
correlated with the
configuration of the Electra complex; of
an entirely
This
maternal rivalry.
different
nature
it is
is
the
therefore
from the Oedipus
Putting on one side the greater hysterical
complex.
tendency of women, for here we are concerned with the ground work of normality, the Electra complex is less
frequent and has less social importance as well
as a smaller influence on Western culture.
other hand, felt
its
influence
makes
and the father-daughter
itself
the
more frequently
incest
incomparably more frequent in real
On
seems
to
be
occurrence than
that between mother and son, for various reasons of a biological
and sociological nature.
our interest in this discussion
is
Since, however,
mainly in the cultural
the complexes,
we cannot
follow the parallel between the Oedipus
and Electra
and
social
influence
complexes in parison
detail.
between
of
Nor can we enter into a com-
the
higher
classes,
where
the
^ Such as we find it so powerfully described for instance in the very instructive novel of Maupassant, Fort comme la Mort.
r
SEX AND REPRESSION
66
repressions are stronger, where there
is
more hysteria
but fewer cases of actual incest occur, and the lower classes, where, since the girl's sex interest is frequently
engaged
earlier
and more normally, she
to hysterical distortions, but suffers
from persecution by the Let us
now
is less liable
more frequently
father.^
Puberty
turn to the Trobriand Islands.
begins there earlier than with us, but at the same time,
when
begun
their sexual activities.
individual^
it
boys and
sets in
puberty
have already
In the social
not
does
girls
constitute
life
of the
a
sharp
turning point as in those savage communities where Gradually, as he passes
initiation ceremonies exist.
to manhood, the
economic pursuits and tribal occupations,
part in
he
is
boy begins to take a more active
considered a young
of puberty he is a full
marry and carry on his
privileges.
The
man
(ulatile)
member
all his girl,
,
and by the end
of the tribe, ready to
duties as well as to enjoy
who
at
the beginning of
puberty acquires more freedom and independence
from her family, has also to do more work, amuse herself
^
more
Among
intensely,
and carry on such
duties.
peasants, the attempts of father on daughter are very
among the Latin Rumania the occurrence of this type of incest is very common among peasants, and so it seems to be in Italy. In the Canary Islands, I know myself of a few cases of frequent.
races.
I
This seems especially to be the case
have been told that
in
father and daughter committing incest, not in a clandestine manner,
but living openly
in a
shameless menage and rearing their children.
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX
67
ceremonial, economic, and legal, as are entailed by full
womanhood.
But the most important change, and the one which interests us most, is the partial break-up of the family
at the time
adolescent boys and girls cease
when the
to be permanent inmates of the parental home.
and
brothers
sisters,
whose avoidance has begun
long before in childhood, must strict taboo, so that
For
any
now keep an extremely
possibility of contact while
engaged in sexual pursuits must be eliminated. danger
obviated
is
bukumatula.
inhabited
A
This
by a
name
by groups
of
is
special
given to special houses
will join
girls.
such a house,
owned by some mature youth
is
the
institution,
adolescent boys and
boy as he reaches puberty
which
This
or
young
widower and tenanted by a number of youths, from
who are there joined by their sweethearts.^ parental home is drained completely of its
three to six,
Thus the
adolescent males, though until the boy's marriage
he
always come back for food, and will also
will
continue to work for his household to some extent.
A
girl,
on the rare nights
of chastity
when she
engaged in one bukumatula or another,
may
is
not
return
to sleep at home.
What
is
the
attitude
towards
mother,
father,
For a detailed description and analysis of this remarkable a mimicry of group -marriage as we have on record, compare the author's forthcoming Sexual Life of Savages. ^
institution, as close
SEX AND REPRESSION
68 sister or
brother into which the sentiments of the
Melanesian boy and
epoch
we
girl
crystalUze at this important
As with a modern European boy and
?
see that at this period there
is
only a
girl,
final cast,
a consolidation of what has been in gradual formation
during
whom
from
life.
The mother,
the child has been weaned
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;in the widest
previous
the
word
sense of the
of
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;remains
and
of all kinship
stages
still
relationship for the rest of
are determined with regard to her
no one
do
it,
home.
else is there to
while
and attachment, prescribed by
social
remain also deeply founded in real
senti-
man
dies or suffers mishap,
be the one to sorrow and her waihng
will
will last longest little of
relatives.
provide for her, he will have to
ment, and when an adult
mother
and her
her house will always be his second
Affection
obligations,
his
life.
boy's status in society, his duties and privileges,
The
If
the pivotal point
and be most
sincere.
Yet there
is
the personal friendship, the mutual confidences
and intimacy which
is
so characteristic of the mother-
to-son relationship in our society.
The detachment
from the mother, carried out as we have seen at every stage
with
more
easily
fewer
suppressions,
and more thoroughly than with
premature is
wrenches
and
us,
violent
achieved in a more complete and
harmonious manner.
The father The boy, who
at this time suffers a temporary eclipse. as a child
was
fairly
independent and
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX became the member gains
now on
of the small, juvenile republic,
the one
hand the
additional freedom of
the hukumatula, while on the other he becomes
more
restricted
by
his
kada (maternal uncle).
He
has
less
time and
less
Later on, when friction
with the maternal uncle makes
its
appearance, he
to his father once more, and their
friendship then becomes settled.
life
much
various duties towards his
interest left for the father.
turns, as a rule,
69
At
this stage,
however, when the adolescent has to learn his duties, to be instructed in traditions his arts
and
who
his teacher
is
and to study
crafts, his interest in his
and
his magic,
mother's brother,
tutor, is greatest
and
their
relations are at their best.^
There
is
one more important difference between
the Melanesian boy's feeling for his parents and that
when
own
educated boy in our
of the
at puberty
fiery vision
and with
society.
With
social initiation the
opens before the youth,
a strange shadow on his previous
its
us,
new
glare throws
warm
feelings for
mother and father. His own sexuality estranges him from his progenitors, embarrasses their relations and creates deep complications. Not so in the ^
The
relation
between these three, the young man, his father and
his mother's brother, are in reality
somewhat more complicated
have been able to show here, and present an interesting picture of the play and clash of the incompatible principles of kinship and authority. This subject will be discussed in a forthcoming book on kinship. Compare also Crime and Custom, 1926.
than
I
70
SEX AND REPRESSION
matrilineal
society.
The
absence
indecency period and of the parental authority
;
above
;
all
the
early
struggles against
first
the gradual and open taking-up
of sex ever since it first
blood
of
began to
stir in
the young
the attitude of benevolent onlookers
which the parents take towards the sexuality of their
young
the fact of the mother's withdrawing
;
completely but gradually from the boy's passionate feeUngs brings
;
the father smiling his approval
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
this
all
about the fact that the intensification of
sexuality at puberty exercises no direct influence
upon the relation to the parents.
One is,
relation,
that
brother and
between
sexuahty
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;especially
extends to
all free
of sex completely
This taboo, which
at puberty.
association
and excludes the motive
from the relations of the two,
place
it
must be kept
in
mind that
great sexual barrier in a man's illicit
to trespass,
this
life,
and that
it
taboo
is
first
the
beyond which
it
constitutes
also
The
pro-
the most important general moral rule. hibition,
affects
For in the
the sexual outlook of both in general.
is
sister,
however, deeply affected by every increase of
moreover, which starts in childhood with
the separation of brothers and sisters and of which this separation
always remains the main point, extends
also to all other females of the
sexual world
is
for the
same
boy divided
one of these, embracing the
clan.
into
women
Thus the
two moieties
of his
own
:
clan,
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX is
him
prohibited to
the other, to which
;
of the remaining three clans belong,
is
71
women
lawful.
Let us compare now the brother-sister relation
With
Melanesia and Europe.
childhood gradually cools
somewhat constrained is
off
in
the intimacy of
us,
and changes into a which the
relation, in
sister
naturally but not completely divided from her
brother
by
social, psychological
and
biological factors.
In Melanesia, as soon as any intimacy in play or in childish confidences sets
The
in.
always
near
might spring up, the
sister
yet
remains
never
a
strict
mysterious
taboo being,
divided by the
intimate,
invisible yet all powerful wall of traditional
command
which gradually changes into a moral and personal imperative.
sexual
The
horizon
sister
remains the only spot on the
permanently hidden.
Any
natural
impulses of infantile tenderness are as systematically repressed from the outset as other natural impulses are in our children, '
indecent
'
as
and the
sister
becomes thus
an object of thought, interest and
feeling, just as the
forbidden things do for our children.
Later on, as the personal experiences in sexuaHty develop, the veil of reserve separating the two thickens.
Though they have constantly to avoid each yet,
owing to the fact that he
is
other,
the provider of her
household, they must constantly keep one another in
thought
and
attention.
Such
premature repression must have
its
artificial
and
results.
The
SEX AND REPRESSION
72
psychologists foretell
In
the
of
Freudian school could
easily
them.-
have spoken almost exclusively from
all this I
the point of view of the boy.
What
is
the configura-
tion of the Melanesian girl's attitude to her family
as
it
crystallizes
at
puberty
her attitude does not differ so her European counterpart as boy.
Roughly speaking,
?
much from
that of
the case with the
is
Just because of the brother and sister taboo,
the Trobriand matriarchy touches the the boy. to take
For, since her brother
any
girl less
is strictly
than
forbidden
interest in her sexual affairs, including
her marriage, and her mother's brother has also to
keep aloof from these matters, her father
who
is
it is,
strangely enough,
her guardian as regards matrimonial
So that between father and daughter
arrangements.
not quite an identical, but a very similar relation exists as with us.
For among ourselves the
the female child and her father
and thus the found
relation
in the Trobriands
friction
between
normally small,
is
approaches nearer to that
between father and
child.
There, on the other hand, the intimacy between a
grown-up man and an adolescent remembered,
is
not considered
fraught with some temptation.
who, be
girl,
his
This
kinswoman, is
it
is
not lessened
but increased by the fact that though the daughter is
not actually tabooed by the laws of exogamy,
yet sexual intercourse between the two
is
considered
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX in the highest degree reprehensible,
though
73 never
it is
name of suvasova, which means breach exogamy. The reason for this prohibition between
given the of
father and daughter
of course, simply that
is,
it
is
wrong to have sexual intercourse with the daughter of the
woman
whom you
with
not be astonished when later, as
We
co-habit.
we
shall
trace the influence
of the typical attitudes between members of the
family,
we
happens
in reahty,
though
an obsession, nor has
With
not
is
incest
hardly could be called
any echo
in folk-lore.
more natural than that
essentially
difference there girl
it
it
father-daughter
regard to her mother, the general course of
the relation
though
that
find
shall
is
at puberty
:
jealousies,
point
of
from the parental home and her
of
interests
normally
mother-daughter
prevent
rivalries
and
though they do not always preclude the
occurrence of father-daughter incest.
exception
One
namely, that the exodus of the
numerous outside sex the development
different.
Europe,
in
of
Thus, with the
her attitude to the brother, broadly
speaking, sentiments similar to those in Europe are to be found in a Melanesian
girl.
IX
THE COMPLEX OF MOTHER-RIGHT T T 7E
have been comparing the two
civilizations, the
European and the Melanesian, and we have seen that there exist deep differences, some of the forces
by which
society moulds man's biological nature
Though
being essentially dissimilar. is
in each there
a certain latitude given to sexual freedom, and a
certain
amount
of interference with
and regulation
of
the sex instinct, yet in each the incidence of the
taboo and the play of sexual liberty within prescribed bounds
are
entirely
different.
its
There
is
also a quite dissimilar distribution of authority within
the family, and correlated with of
counting
societies
the
kinship.
growth
We
a different
mode
have followed in both the
of
it
average boy or
under these divergent tribal laws and customs.
girl
We
have found that at almost every step there are great differences
due to the interplay between biological
impulse and social rule which sometimes harmonize,
sometimes
sometimes
conflict,
to
an
sometimes lead to a short inequilibrium
fraught,
with possibilities for a future development. final
stage of the
reached maturity,
child's
we have
life-history,
seen
74
bliss,
however,
after
At the it
has
its feelings crystallize
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX into a system
of
sentiments towards the mother,
and
father, brother, sister,
the Trobriands, the
in
maternal uncle, a system which
and which,
society,
75
adapt ourselves to
in order to
psycho-analytic terminology,
typical of each
is
we
called the
'Family
Complex' or the 'nuclear complex'.
Now
me
allow
of these
to restate briefly the
two complexes '
main features
The Oedipus complex, the
'.
system of attitudes typical of our patriarchal society, is
formed in early infancy, partly during the transition
between the
first
and second stages
So that, towards
partly in the course of the latter.
when the boy
end,
its
is
about
of childhood,
five or six
years old,
his attitudes are well formed, though perhaps not finally settled.
And
these attitudes comprise already
a number of elements of hate and suppressed In
this, I think,
our results do not
differ to
desire.
any extent
from those of psycho-analysis.^ In the matrilineal society at that stage, though the
has
child
towards
its
developed
father
very definite sentiments
and mother, nothing suppressed,
nothing negative, no frustrated desire forms a part of
them. social
Whence
arises this difference
?
As we saw, the
arrangements of the Trobriand matriliny are
in
almost complete harmony with the biological course of ^ I have come to realize since the above was written that no orthodox or semi-orthodox psycho-analyst would accept my statement of the complex ', or of any aspect of the doctrine. '
SEX AND REPRESSION
76
development, while the institution of father -right found in
our society crosses and represses a number of natural
To
impulses and inclinations. there
trace
more
it
in detail,
the passionate attachment to the mother,
is
the bodily desire to cling close to her, which in patriarchal institutions
is
broken or interfered with
which
morality,
way
one
in
or another
the influence of our
;
condemns sexuality
children;
in
the brutality of the father, especially in the lower strata, the
and
atmosphere of his exclusive right to mother
child acting subtly but strongly in the higher
by the wife
strata, the fear felt
husband
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
children.
all
of displeasing her
these influences force apart parents
Even where the
and
between father
rivalry
and
child for the mother's personal attention is reduced
to a
minimum,
or to naught, there comes, in the second
between
period, a distinct clash of social interests
father
and
child.
The
child
is
an
encumbrance
and an obstacle to the parental freedom, a reminder of age of
and decUne and,
if it is
a future social rivalry.
a son, often the menace Thus, over and above
the clash of sensuality, there social
friction
advisedly
between
'child'
and
father
not
is
ample
and
'boy',
room
child. for,
I
for
say
according
to our results, the sex difference between the children
does not play any great part at this stage, nor has a closer relation
made
its
between father and daughter as yet
appearance.
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX All
and
these forces
are absent
influences
the matrilineal society of the Trobriands. all
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;and
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;there
no condemnation
is
sensuality as such, above
all,
First of
mother
of the child to his till it
plays
is
allowed to take
The
child during these
two early periods
helper.
clinging
its
diverted
is
bodily interests.
and
sex or of
The sensuous
out and
itself
of
no moral horror at the
idea of infantile sexuality.
friend
from
that has, hien entendu, nothing to do with
matriliny
course
^^
natural
by other
attitude of the father to the
that of a near
is
At the time when our father makes
himself pleasant at best
by
his entire absence
the nursery, the Trobriand father
is
first
from
a nurse
and then a companion.
The development also differs in
Europe and Melanesia
of the nursery classes,
of pre-sexual life at this stage
among
develop
a
;
the repressions
us, especially in
tendency
towards
the higher clandestine
inquisitions into indecent things, especially excretory
functions and organs.
no
such
period.
Among
Now
this
the savages infantile
we
find
pre-genital
indecency establishes distinctions between the decentindecent, the pure-impure,
and the indecent, parent-
proof compartment reinforces
depth to the taboo which relations to the
is
and gives additional
suddenly cast over certain
mother, that
is
to the premature
banishment from her bed and bodily embraces.
So that here also the complications of our society
SEX AND REPRESSION
78
are not shared
by the
children in the Trobriands.
At the next stage of sexuality In
difference.
more or
less
we find a no less relevant
Europe there
a
is
latency
period
pronounced, which implies a breach of
continuity in the sexual development and, according to Freud, serves to reinforce
many
of our repressions
and the general amnesia, and to create many dangers
On the other hand,
in the normal development of sex. also represents the
it
triumph
of other cultural
social interests over sexuahty.
at this stage, sex in
almost
Among
the savages
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;a
form
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;establishes
itself
an early genital form
unknown among
ourselves
and
foremost among
the child's interests, never to be
dislodged again.
This, while in
destructive,
culturally
helps
many
respects
gradual
the
it
is
and
harmonious weaning of the child from the family influences.
With
this
we have
half of the child's
entered already into the second
development, for the period of
sexual latency in our society belongs to this part.
When we
consider these two later stages which form
we
the second half of the development,
profound difference.
With us during
find another
this early period
of puberty, the Oedipus complex, the attitudes of the
boy towards In
his parents, only soUdify
Melanesia,
on
the
other
hand,
and it
crystallize. is
mainly
during this second epoch, in fact almost exclusively then, that
any complex
is
formed.
For only at this
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX
79
period is the child submitted to the system of repressions
and taboos which begin to mould these forces he responds, partly
by developing more or and
human
desires, for
but also
The
less
To
his nature.
by adaptation,
partly
repressed antagonisms
nature
not only malleable
is
elastic.
repressing and moulding forces in Melanesia
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;the
submission
are
twofold
law,
and the prohibitions
matriarchal tribal
to
The
exogamy.
of
first
is
brought about by the influence of the mother's brother,
who, in appeahng to the pride in
child's
sense of honour,
and ambition, comes to stand to him
in a relation
many respects analogous to that of the father among On the other hand, both the efforts which he
us.
demands and the
livalry
between
and
successor
succeeded introduce the negative elements of jealousy
and resentment. Thus an 'ambivalent' attitude
is
formed in which veneration assumes the acknowledged
dominant itself
place, while a repressed hatred manifests
only indirectly.
The second taboo, the prohibition of incest, surrounds the
sister,
and to a
on the maternal
lesser degree other
side, as well as
Of
of sexual mystery. is
We
whom
noted
entering the boy's
clanswomen, with a
all this class
the representative to
stringently.
life
that in
female relatives
of
women, the
veil
sister
the taboo applies most this
infancy,
severing
taboo,
cuts short the
incipient tenderness towards his sister
which
is
the
SEX AND REPRESSION
8o
This taboo also, since
natural impulse of a child.
makes
an
even
causes
crime,
a
matters
contact
accidental
sexual
in
thought
the
sister to be always present, as well as
it
the
of
consistently
repressed.
Comparing the two systems briefly,
we see
family attitudes
of
that in a patriarchal society, the infantile
rivalries and the later social functions introduce into
the attitude of father and son, besides mutual attach-
ment, also a certain amount of resentment and
Petween mother and premature unsatisfied
craving
interests
come
new bodily
infancy
in
which,
in
up
between father and son, and
itself
deep,
when sexual
and assumes often an
longings,
of the child for its
a
memory with
in
mother
all is
is
no
erotic
friction
the infantile craving
allowed gradually to
The
in a natural, spontaneous manner.
ambivalent attitude of veneration and dislike
between a
man and
the
dreams and other
In the Trobriands there
fantasies.
spend
leaves on,
later
mixed up
in, is
which comes
character
on the other hand, the
son,
separation
dislike.
is felt
his mother's brother, while the
repressed sexual attitude of incestuous
can be formed only towards his
sister.
temptation
Applying to
each society a terse, though somewhat crude formula,
we might say that
in the
the repressed desire to
mother,
while
in
the
kill
Oedipus complex there
is
the father and marry the
matrilineal
society
of
the
THE FORMATION OF A COMPLEX Trobriands the wish kill
is
marry the
to
8i
and to
sister
the maternal uncle.
With
this,
we have summarized the
detailed inquiry,
problem
results of our
and given an answer to the
set out at the beginning, that
is,
first
we have
studied the variation of the nuclear complex with
the constitution of the family, and
we have shown
what manner the complex depends upon some
in
the features of family
life
of
and sexual morals.
We are indebted to psycho-analysis for the discovery that there exists a typical configuration of sentiments in our society,
and
concerned with sex, as to
an
why
In the foregoing pages
exist.
outline of the nuclear
matriUneal one, where
it
such a complex must
we were
complex
differ
and what
able to give
of another society, a
has never been studied before.
We found that this complex differs patriarchal one,
mainly
for a partial explanation,
essentially
and we have shown why
social forces bring it about.
drawn our comparison on the broadest
from the it
must
We
have
basis,
and,
without neglecting sexual factors, we have also systematically is
drawn
important,
in
the other elements.
for, so far, it
The
result
has never been suspected
that another type of nuclear complex might be in existence.
By my
analysis,
I
have established that
Freud's theories not only roughly correspond to
human
psychology, but that they follow closely the modification
in
human
nature brought
about by various
82
SEX AND REPRESSION
constitutions
of
society.
In other words,
have
I
established a deep correlation between the type of society
and the nuclear complex found
this is in a sense a confirmation of the
Freudian psychology,
it
elastic.
main tenet
of
might compel us to modify
certain of its features, or rather to
formulae more
While
there.
To put
it
make some
concretely,
it
of its
appears
necessary to draw in more systematically the correlation between biological
and
social
to assume the universal existence
influences of
the
;
not
Oedipus
complex, but in studying every type of civilization, to establish the special complex which pertains to
it.
PART
II
THE MIRROR OF TRADITION I
COMPLEX AND MYTH TT now
rerpains to proceed to the study of the second
problem posed in the is
to
MOTHER-RIGHT
IN
first
part of this volume
investigate whether the
so entirely different in its genesis
and
show that
in the social
and
character
its
also a different
social organization
life,
that
matriHneal complex,
from the Oedipus complex, exercises influence on tradition
;
;
and to
as well as in the folk-lore, of
these natives their specific repressions manifest themselves unmistakably.
Whenever the
passions,
kept
normally within traditional bounds by rigid taboos,
customs and
legal penalties,
break through in crime,
perversion, aberration, or in one of those dramatic
hum-
occurrences which shake from time to time the
drum
life
of a savage
community
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;then these passions
reveal the matriarchal hatred of the maternal uncle
or the incestuous wishes towards the folk-lore
of
matrilineal fairy tales
these
complex.
Melanesians
The
mirrors
examination
and legend, as well as 83
also
The
sister.
of
of magic, will
the
myth,
show
SEX AND REPRESSION
84 that
the
repressed
hatred of the maternal uncle,
ordinarily
masked by conventional reverence and
solidarity,
breaks through in those narratives con-
structed on the model of the day -dream and dictated
by repressed
longings.
Especially interesting
is
the magic of love of these
natives and the mythology connected with
sexual attraction,
all
power
of seduction
to reside in the magic of love.
is
it.
All
believed
This magic again the
natives regard as founded in a dramatic occurrence of the past,
narrated in a strange tragic
brother and sister incest.
by the
myth
of
Thus the position established
description of social relations within the family,
and by an analysis of kinship, can also be independently demonstrated by the study of the culture of these Melanesian natives.
II
DISEASE AND PERVERSION
nnHE
evidence adduced in this part of the essay
While on some points
not quite homogeneous. I
have had
my
information,
full
have to confess
shall
I
ignorance or only incomplete knowledge in others,
and there solve
found
This
it.
it
shaU indicate the problem rather than
I
knowledge
of
due partly to
is
lack of expert
my
having
impossible to psycho-analyze the natives
unevenness in the
by
partly to an unavoidable
material,
that
especially
among
other tribes where
I
shorter time
and worked under
less
collected
much
my
mental disease, partly to
the orthodox technique;
I
is
which
resided for a
favourable
conditions than in the Trobriands, I shall start
Here comes disease.
We
with the weakest items in
first
my
the question of neurosis and mental
have seen in the comparative account of
the child's development
among
ourselves
Trobriands that the matrilineal complex later in the life of a child, that
the intimacy of the family shocks,
if
repertoire.
any, that
it
is
circle,
it
is
that
and is
in the
formed
formed outside it
entails fewer
due mainly to the play of
rivalry, while its erotic thwartings
85
do not go to the
SEX AND REPRESSION
86 roots
Since
of infantile sexuality.
Freudian
theory
much
expect a
It is
so,
is
us
lead
the to
smaller prevalence of those neuroses
(ilbertragungsneurosen) due to
hood.
would
neurosis
of
this
the traumas of child-
a great pity that a competent alienist
has not been able to examine the Trobrianders under the same conditions as myself, for
think he could
I
throw some interesting sidelights upon the assumptions of psycho-analysis.
When for
studying the Trobrianders,
it
would be
futile
an ethnographer to compare them with Europeans,
for with us there are
innumerable other factors which
complicate the picture and contribute to the formation
But some thirty miles south
mental disease.
of
of the
Trobriands there are the Amphlett Islands, inhabited
by people
essentially
language, but
who
similar
in
race,
however, very
differ,
custom, and
much
organization, have strict sexual morals, that
pre-nuptial
have
no
is,
regard
sexual intercourse with disapproval and institutions
while their family
Though
in social
matrilineal,
to
support
sexual
license,
much more closely knit. they have a much more developed life
patriarchal authority,
is
and
this,
combined with the
sexual repressiveness, establishes a picture of child-
hood more similar to our own.^ 1
For a description of some customs and features of the culture Amphlett Island, see the author's Argonauts
of the natives of the
of the Western Pacific, chap. xi.
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; THE MIRROR OF TRADITION Now
my own
even with
subject,
87
limited knowledge of the
received quite a different impression of the
I
neurotic
dispositions
Trobriands, though
knew
I
these
of
the
In
natives.
scores of natives intimately
and had a nodding acquaintance with many more,
name a
could not
single
man
or
Nervous
hysterical or even neurasthenic.
I
woman who was tics,
com-
pulsory actions or obsessive ideas were not to be In the system of native pathology, based, of
found. course,
on
belief in black
magic, but reasonably true to
the symptoms of disease, there are two categories of
mental
nagowa,
disorder
cretinism, idiocy,
and
a defect of speech
;
is
which
corresponds
who from time
to time break out into acts of violence
The natives
and recognize that
who have
also given to people
and gwayluwa, which corresponds
roughly to mania, and comprises those
behaviour.
to
and deranged
of the Trobriands
know
well
in the neighbouring islands of the
Amphletts and d'Entrecasteaux there are other types of black
magic which can produce
different
effects
on the mind
from those known to themselves, of which
the symptoms are according to their accounts compulsory actions, nervous tics and various forms of obsession.
Amphletts,
And
my
that this was a
during first
my
few months' stay in the
and strongest impression was
community
of neurasthenics.
Coming
from the open, gay, hearty and accessible Trobrianders, it
was astonishing to
find oneself
among a community
SEX AND REPRESSION
88
of people distrustful of the
newcomer, impatient
in
work, arrogant in their claims, though easily cowed
and extremely nervous when tackled more energetically.
The women ran away
and kept
in hiding the
as I landed in their villages
whole of
exception of a few old hags. picture,, I at
my
stay, with the
Apart from
this general
once found a number of people affected
with nervousness
whom
could not use as informants,
I
because they would either
lie
in
some
sort of fear,
or else become excited and offended over any
It is characteristic that in the
detailed questioning.
Trobriands even the rather than
spiritualistic
mediums
abnormal people.
Trobriands black magic
manner by men, that
more
is
And
while in
practised in a
is
are poseurs
the '
'
scientific
by methods which present small
claim to the supernatural, in the islands of the south there are
which
'
flying
in other
witches, and
wizards
'
who
practise the
parts belongs only to
who make
magic
semi-fabulous
at first sight a quite
abnormal
mpression.
In another community
among whom
ethnographic apprenticeship, and did not study with the same as intimately as
I
I
whom
methods or
served I
my
therefore
come
to
know
did the Trobrianders, the conditions
are even more repressive than in the Amphlett Islands.
The
Mailu, inhabiting a portion of the south coast of
New Guinea, are patriUneal, have a pronounced paternal authority in the family, and a fairly strict code of
THE MIRROR OF TRADITION repressive sexual morals. ^
Among
these natives,
whom
noted a number of people
and therefore
neurasthenics,
89
I
had
I
had
classed as
useless as ethnographic
informants.
But aU these tentative remarks, though they
are not
sheer guesses, are intended only to raise the problem,
and
to indicate
what the solution would most probably
The problem would
be.
number of the
of matrilineal
same
:
to study a
and patriarchal communities
level of culture, to register the variation
of sexual repression
and
therefore be
and
of the family constitution,
to note the correlation
between the amount of
sexual and family repression and the prevalence of hysteria and compulsion neurosis.
Melanesia, where side living
by
side
we
The conditions find
in
communities
under entirely different conditions, are
like a
naturally arranged experiment for this purpose.
Another point which might be interpreted in favour of the Freudian solution of this problem
is
the correlation
of sexual perversions with sexual repression.
Freud has
shown that there is a deep connection between the course of infantile sexuality in later
^
life.
Compare the
On
writer's
monograph on " The Natives
information on mental disease I
did not include
of republishing it in
a
of
Mailu "
Royal Society of Australia, vol. 39, 1915, is
contained there.
to return to the district and the essay was published
account in which
of perversion
the basis of his theory, an entirely
in the Proceedings of the
No
and the occurrence
all I
fuller form.
knew
'I
had hoped
a preliminary and had noted, thinking cis
SEX AND REPRESSION
90
community
lax
like that of the Trobrianders,
who do
not interfere with the free development of infantile
This
show a minimum
should
sexuality,
fully confirmed
is
known
sexuality was
to
perversions.
of
Homo-
the Trobriands.
in
and
other tribes
in
exist
regarded as a filthy and ridiculous practice. It cropped
up
in the
Trobriands only with the influence of white
man, more boys and
and
especially of white
on a Mission Station, penned
girls
strictly isolated houses,
The
man's morality.
cooped up
in separate
together,
had
to help themselves out as best they could, since that
which every Trobriander looks upon as
was denied
right
made
natives,
homosexuality
whom
upon
of non-missionary as well as missionary
the
is
rule
among
were a few cases
caught in flagrante
from the face of
them
those
white man's morality has been forced in
such an irrational and unscientific manner. rate, there
due and
According to very careful
to them.
inquiries
his
of
delicto,
which
'
At any
evil doers
'
were ignominiously banished
God back
tried to continue
in
into the villages,
it,
where one
but had to give up under
the pressure of the native morals, expressed in scorn
and
derision.
perversions are
I
have
also reason
much more
prevalent in the Amphlett
and d'Entrecasteaux archipelago again
I
have
to regret that
to suppose that
I
important subject in detail.
in
the south,
was not able to study
but this
Ill
DREAMS AND DEEDS
XTOW
we have
of
expresses
how
to study
family in the Trobriands
matrihneal
the
itself in
of the natives.
If
the integral sentiment
the culture and social organization
we pushed
problem too deep
this
would indeed lead us to a minute examination from
it
this
point of view of practically every manifestation of their tribal
life.
We
shall
have to make a selection and pick
out the most relevant domains of divided into two categories (2)
the data of folk-lore.
:
To
These can be
the free fantasies, and
(i)
the
fact.
first class
belong those
products of individual imagination such as dreams,
day-dreams, personal desires and ideals which, coming
from the individual's own
life,
are shaped
endo-psychic forces of his personality.
by the
In this class
can be reckoned not only the manifestations of fantasies in
thought and dream, but also in deed.
Or a sin
or
and decency of
For a crime
an act which outrages pubhc opinion is
committed when the repressive
forces
law and moraUty are broken by the repressed
passions.
In such deeds
we can measure both
the
strength of the ideal and the depth of the passion.
We
shall turn
now
to this 91
first
class of
dreams and
SEX AND REPRESSION
92
deeds in which the individual shakes the shackles
of
off
temporarily
custom and reveals the repressed
elements and the conflict with the repressing forces.
Dreams and day-dreams study among It is a
are not an easy subject for,
the Melanesians of the Trobriand Islands.
remarkable and characteristic feature of these
natives,
in
which they seem to
savages, that they apparently
differ
dream
from other
have
little,
little
interest in their dreams, seldom relate them spon-
dream
taneously, do not regard the ordinary
as having
any prophetic or other importance, and have no code
When
of symbolic explanation whatever.
the subject directly, as
I
often did,
informants whether they had dreamt, and, their
tackled
I
and asked so,
if
my
what
dreams had been, the answer was usually negative,
with rare exceptions, to which we
will return.
Is this
absence of dreams, or rather of interest in dreams, to the fact that society, a society
restricted?
appears
we are dealing with a non-repressed among whom sex as such is in no way
Is it so because their
late,
rarity of free
due
and has few
'
complex
'
dreams and the absence
weak,
is
infantile elements
This
?
of strong effect,
hence absence of remembrance, point to
the same
conclusion as the absence of neurosis, that
is,
to the
correctness in broad outline of the Freudian theory.
For is
this theory affirms that the
unsatisfied
sexual
or
sexual
appetite,
quasi-sexual
main cause and
impulses
as
of
dreams
especially
are
such
repressed
THE MIRROR OF TRADITION To
violently in infancy.
93
one could only
this question
obtain a satisfactory answer by collecting rich comparative material
and mode of living but with different
culture I
have used so
there
among two communities far the expression
a class of dreams which
is
whether with the
free or
'
free
of similar
repressions.
dreams
it is difficult
',
for
to range,
with the fixed fantasies, since
they run on lines prescribed by tradition and could be called in
'
official
which a
some task
dreams
man is
Such, for instance, are dreams
'.
leading an enterprise or carrying out
supposed to dream under certain circum-
The
stances about the object of his enterprise.
leaders
dream about the weather, about
of fishing excursions
may
the place where the shoals
appear, about the
and they give
best date for the expedition,
and instructions accordingly.
Those
their orders
in charge of the
overseas expeditions called Kula are often supposed to have dreams about the success of their ceremonial trading.
Above
all
the magicians have dreams associ-
ated with the performance of their magic. also
another form
associated with
typical
of
magic,
that,
about as the direct result of a
There
or traditional
is
dream
namely, which comes
spell or of
the ceremonial overseas trading there
a
is
rite.
Thus, in
a certain spell
which acts directly on the mind of the partner, induces in
him a dream, and
desire
the exchange.
to produce a
this
dream makes the partner
Most love magic
is
supposed
dream which awakens the amorous
wish.
94
SEX AND REPRESSION
Thus these
natives, remarkably enough, reverse the
Freudian theory
of,
dreams, for to them the dream
is
the cause of the wish,^ In reahty, this class of traditional
dreams
is
very
much
within the lines of the Freudian
For they are constructed as a projection on
theory.
own desire. The victim of love magic feels in her dream an itching, a craving which is the same as the state of mind of the performer to the victim of the magician's
The Kula partner under the
of the magic.
magic
influence of
supposed to dream of glorious scenes of
is
exchange which form the very vision dominating the wishes of the performer.
Nor
are such dreams merely spoken of
supposed to
exist.
Very frequently the magician him-
would come and
self
a good
of a
tell
yield in fishing,
on the strength of
and only
it.
me
that he
had dreamt about
and would organize an expedition
Or a garden wizard would speak
dream he had had about a long drought, and
fore order certain
things to be done.
there-
During the
annual ceremonial feast in honour of dead ancestors
had on two occasions opportunities of natives.
I
dreams
of noting
In both cases the dream referred to the
proceedings, and in one the dreamer claimed to have
dreamt that he had had a conversation with the
who were not ^
Cf. also
my
satisfied
Argonauts of
and detailed descriptions the narrative.
with things.
the
Another
Western Pacific,
of the rites
and
spirits,
class of
chapter on magic
spells in the course of
THE MIRROR OF TRADITION dream
typical
is
95
concerned with the birth of babies.
In these the future mother has a sort of
dream annuncia-
tion from one of her dead relatives.^
Now one of the typical or official dreams is the sexual dream, which interests us here more especially. A man will
dream that a woman
dream he awake This
will
have congress with
conceal
will
up the dream
try to follow initiate
from
her,
and he
will
actively in real
For
will
and
life
dream
this
him had performed
visited
in
;
but he
his wife,
an intrigue with the woman.
means that she who
at night
semen on the mat.
finding the discharge of
he
him
visits
love
magic and that she desires him.
About such dreams confidences, followed efforts of the
dream
man
had a number
I
by
of personal
the story of the subsequent
at establishing
an intrigue with his
visitor.
Now,
naturally, as soon as
about their erotic dreams,
scent of incestuous dreams.
you ever dream
I
was
was
I
To
your mother
of
told
by the natives
the question in this
way
answer would be a calm, unshocked negation.
mother
is
forbidden
dream such a
thing.
would be put about the ^
Cf,
'
Baloma
'
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
"
:
?
Do
" the "
The
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;only a tonagowa (imbecile) would She
thing would happen."
1916.
on the
at once keenly
is
an old woman.
No
such
But whenever the question sister,
article in the
the answer would be quite
Journal of
the R.
Anthrop.
Inst.,
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; SEX AND REPRESSION
96
Of course
with a strong affective reaction.
different,
knew enough never
I
to ask such a question directly of
a man, and never to discuss
it
company.
in
asking in the form of whether
'
But even
other people
'
could
ever have such dreams, the reaction would be that of indignation and anger.
answer at
all
an embarrassed pause another
after
;
Sometimes there would be no
subject would be taken again, would deny angrily.
my
it
up by the informant.
seriously, others
Some,
vehemently and
But, working out the question bit by bit with
best informants, the truth at last appeared,
found that the actually well
dreams
real state of opinion is different.
known
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; " a man Why
tempered.
?
is
that
'
other people
ashamed," such a
'
It is
ill-
Because he has dreamt that he had " This
man would
say.
I
made me
frequently,
feel
found that this
one of the typical dreams known to
occurring
I
have such
sometimes sad, ashamed, and
connection with his sister."
in fact,
and
is,
exist,
and one which haunts and
confirmed by other data, especially in
we will find myth and legend.
Again, the brother-sister incest
the most repre-
disturbs the dreamer.
That
this is so,
is
hensible form of breach of the rules of
exogamy
which institution makes it illicit to have connection with
any woman sister
incest
of the is
same
clan.
regarded with the utmost horror, a
breach of clan exogamy desirable,
But though the brother-
is
a thing both smart and
owing to the piquant
difficulties in
carrying
;
THE MIRROR OF TRADITION it
out.
In accordance with
this,,
dreams about clan
Thus, comparing the different
incest are very frequent.
types of incestuous dreams, there
every reason to
is
assume that the mother hardly ever appears and,
if
97
in
them
she does, these dreams leave no deep impression
;
that the more distant female relatives are dreamt of
and that the impression
frequently,
left is
pleasant
while incestuous dreams about the sister occur and leave a deep and painful
memory. This
have been expected,
as
for,
we saw when
development of their sexuality, there in
is
is
what might
following the
no temptation
the case of the mother, a violent and strongly
repressed one towards the
sister,
and a
spicy, not very
repressed prohibition about the clans woman.
Brother and
sister
is
regarded with such
first
an observer, even well
inces.t
horror by the natives that at
acquainted with their Ufe, would confidently affirm
would never occur, though a Freudian might
that
it
have
his suspicions.
be found fully sister existed
And
justified.
these,
on closer search, would
Incest between brother
and
even in olden days, and there are certain
family scandals told especially about the ruhng clan of
Nowadays, when the ancient morals and
the Malasi.
institutions break
down under
the influence of spurious
Christian morality and the white man's so-called law
and order tribal
is
introduced, the passions repressed
tradition break through even
and openly.
I
by
more violently
have three or four cases on record in
SEX AND REPRESSION
98
which public opinion
definitely,
though
in whispered
undertones, accused a brother of incestuous relations
with his
was a
One
sister.
lasting intrigue
case,
however, stands out, for
famous
it
for its effrontery, for the
notorious character of the hero and heroine, and for
the scandalous stories spun around
Mokadayu, Like
all of his
success
his
of
Okopukopu, was a famous
profession, he
with
was no
is
and the two
attract each other."
with
all
singer.
renowned
for
say the natives,
a long passage like the wila (vagina),
a beautiful voice will like
him."
less
" For,"
ladies.
" the throat
will like
it.
Many
women
"
A man who
has
much and they how he slept Olivilevi, how he
very
stories are told of
the wives of the chief in
seduced this and that married woman.
For a time,
Mokadayu had a
brilliant
as a
medium, extraordinary phenomena
spiritualistic
and very lucrative career
happening in his hut, especially dematerializations of various valuable objects thus transported to the spirit
But he was unmasked, and
land.
it
was proved that
the dematerialized objects had merely remained in his
own
possession.
Then
there
came about the dramatic
incestuous love with his girl,
She was a very beautiful
and, being a Trobriander, she had, of course,
lovers.
became to
sister.
incident of his
Suddenly she withdrew chaste.
The youth
all
many
her favours and
of the village,
who
confided
each other their banishment from her favours.
THE MIRROR OF TRADITION
99
decided to find out what was the matter.
It
soon
appeared that, whoever might be the privileged
rival,
the scene must be laid in her parental house.
One made
evening when both parents were away, a hole was
and through
in the thatch
the discarded lovers saw
it
a sight which shocked them deeply
;
were caught in flagrante
delicto.
A
broke out in the
which, in olden days, would
village,
have end^ed
certainly
brother and sister dreadful scandal
in the suicide of the guilty pair.
Under the present conditions they were able it
to brave
out and lived in incest for several months
married and
left
she
till
the village.
Besides the actual brother and sister incest, there as
have
I
said, a
is,
breach of exogamous rules which
A woman man under the
same clan
is
called suvasova.
of the
bidden to a
penalty of shame and an
eruption of boils
ailment there
all
is
informants told
a magic, which,
me
with
a
many
as
self-satisfied
incidents
in reality small,
rules of official morality,
A young man who
of
is
such
and as with many other
he who breaks is
my
of
smirk,
The moral shame
efficacious.
fellow.
for-
over the body. Against this second
absolutely is
is
a read
Don
it is
a smart
Juan, and
who
has a good conceit of himself, will scorn the unmarried girls,
and try always
woman, of
have an intrigue with a married
especially a chief's wife, or else
suvasova.
" Oh,
to
thou
The
expression
exogamy breaker
!
'
commit acts
suvasova
yoku
',
" sounds something
SEX AND REPRESSION
100 " Oh,
like,
you gay dog
"
!
and
a facetious com-
is
pliment.
To complete
the picture, the negative evidence
may
be stated here that not one single case of mother-son incest could be found, not even a suspicion of
the loudness and stringency of the taboo
is
it,
though
by no means
summary sentiments among the
so great as in the brother-sister incest. In the
given above of the typical family Trobrianders,
I
have stated that the relations between
and daughter are the only ones
father
same pattern as
built
As could be
in a patriarchal society.
expected therefore, father-daughter incest
means
rare occurrence.
Two
up on the
is
of
by no
or three cases in which
there seem to be no doubt whatever are on record.
One
of
them concerned a
who, besides her relations
girl,
with her father, was the sweetheart of a local boy then
my
in
service.
He wanted
to
marry
her,
and appealed
me for financial and moral support in this enterprise therefore had full details of the incest, which left me
to I
in
;
no doubt whatever about the relationship and
its
long duration.
So far we have spoken about the sexual taboo and the repressed wish to break
it,
which
in dreams, in acts of crime
and
however,
fraught
another
relation
criminal desires, that of a
man
the brother of his mother. there
is
finds expression
passion.
with
There
is,
repressed
towards his matriarch,
With regard
to dreams,
one interesting fact to be noted here
:
the
THE MIRROR OF TRADITION
namely, that in prophetic dreams of death
belief,
always be a veyola
will
son,
sister's
who
and not
action
A man who
fact belonging to the sphere of
dreams
his
is
connected with witchcraft.
Very often a man
own mother. So
learning sorcery,
among
victim from
first
relatives.
maternal
kinsman), usually the
has acquired the black magic of disease
must choose maternal
of
(real
it
foredream his uncle's death.
will
Another important
his
loi
that
his
is
known
to be
kinsmen, that means his
real
relatives, are
said to choose
is
when anyone
near
his
always frightened and on the
look out for personal danger. In the chronicles of actual crime, there are also several
cases
problem.
One
to
be
of
them happened
Osapola, half an hour time,
and
I
registered,
bearing
actors well.
brothers, the eldest blind.
I lived at
that
There were three
The youngest one used
always to take the betel nut before
and deprive the blind man
our
in the village of
away from where
knew the
on
it
properly ripened
of his share.
The bhnd man
one day got in a dreadful fury and, seizing an axe,
somehow managed
to
wound
the youngest brother.
The middle one then took a spear and one.
He was
killed the
sentenced to twelve months' imprison-
ment by the white
resident magistrate.
regarded this as an outrageous injustice. of one brother
bhnd
by another
certainly a dreadful
The natives The
killing
is
a purely internal matter,
crime
and an awful tragedy,
SEX AND REPRESSION
102
but one with which the outer world cerned,
and
in
is
can only stand by and show
it
no way con-
its
horror and
There are other cases of violent quarrels,
pity.
and one
or
two more murders within the matrilineal
family, which I have
Of
parricide,
on record.
on the other hand, there
is
not one single
Yet to the natives, as
case to be cited. parricide
fights,
would be no
I
have
said,
tragedy, and would
special
be merely a matter to be settled with the father's
own
clan.
Apart from the dramatic events, the crimes and tragedies which
shake the tribal order to
its
very
foundations, there are the small events which indicate
merely the boiling of the passions under the apparently firm
up
and quiet its
For, as
surface.
we
norms and
traditional
saw, society builds
ideals,
and
trammels and barriers to safeguard them.
up
sets
Yet these
very trammels provoke certain emotional reactions.
Nothing surprised
me
so
much
in the course of
sociological researches as the gradual perception of
my an
undercurrent of desire and inclination running counter to the trend of convention, law right, the principle that
mother
claim
all affection,
is
line,
Mother-
unity of kinship exists only
and that
in the
and morals.
this unity of kinship should
as well as all duties
and
loyalties,
the dictate of tradition. But in reality friendship and
affection to the father,
and
desires with him,
community
of personal interest
combined with the wish to shake
THE MIRROR OF TRADITION off the
exogamous trammels
of the clan
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;these are the
which flow from personal inclination and
live forces
the experiences of individual contribute
103
much
life.
And
these forces
to fan ever-present sparks of
enmity
between brothers, and between the mother's brother
and the nephew. individual,
we
So that
in the real feelings of the
have, so to speak, a sociological negative
of the traditional principle of matriliny.^ ^
This point has been elaborated by the writer in Crime and
Custom,
1926.
IV
OBSCENITY AND MYTH
TT TE
now proceed
to the discussion of folk-lore in
relation to the typical sentiments of the matrilineal family,
plot on the
and with
boundary
this
we
enter the best cultivated
and anthro-
of psycho-analysis
pology. It has long been recognized that for one reason or another the stories related seriously about ancestral
times and the narratives told for amusement correspond to the desires of those
The lore
among whom they
are current.
school of Freud maintain, moreover, that is
folk-
especially concerned with the satisfaction of
repressed wishes
and that
by means
of fairy tales
and legends
;
this is the case also \vith proverbs, typical
jokes and sayings and stereotyped
Let us begin with these
last.
modes
of abuse.
Their relation to the
unconscious must not be interpreted in the sense that
they satisfy the repressed cravings of the person abused, or even of the abuser.
For instance, the expression
widely current among oriental races and '
many savages,
eat excrement,' as well as in a slightly modified form
among
the Latins, satisfies directly the wish of neither.
Indirectly
it is
only meant to debase and disgust the
person thus addressed.
Every form 104
of abuse or
bad
THE MIRROR OF TRADITION
105
language contains certain propositions fraught with
Some
strong emotional possibilities.
emotions of disgust and shame attention to, or impute,
bring into play
others again
;
certain actions
draw
which are
considered abominable in a given society, and thus
wound
Here belongs
the feelings of the listener.
blasphemy, which in European culture reaches
its
zenith of perfection and complexity in the innumerable variations of
Me cago
'
en Dios
the sonorous Spanish all
the various abuses
and the
like, all of
for they indicate
'
Here, also, belong
spoken.
is
by
despised or degraded
pullulating wherever
!
reference to social position,
criminal
occupations,
them very interesting
what
habits,
sociologically,
considered the lowest depth
is
of degradation in that culture.
The incestuous type addressed
is
of swearing, in
invited to have connection with a forbidden
relative, usually the
mother,
easily take the lead,
of
'
('
its subject,
incestuous expressions
thy mother
wife.'
;
viith
thy
and because it plays an important
The natives there have three
part in the Trobriands.
sister
Have connection
This type of swearing interests us most,
mother').
'
Europe the speciahty
in
with the numerous combinations
Yob twayu mat
because of
is
among whom the Russians
of the Slavonic nations,
'
which the person
' :
Kwoy
inani'
—
'
Cohabit with
Kwoy lumuta — cohabit with Kwoy um kwava — cohabit with '
'
and
'
;
'
'
'
The combination
'
of the three sayings
is
thy thy
curious
io6
SEX AND REPRESSION
in itself, for
we
the most
see, side
by
types of intercourse used for the same
illicit
The gradation
purpose of offending and hurting. intensity
more remarkable.
still
is
invitation to maternal incest in chaff or as
Jericho
most
is
is
but a mild term used
a joke, as we might say,
offence,
'
Oh, go to
and one used only when
But the worst
aroused.
of
For while the
the mention of sister incest in abuse
',
serious
anger
most lawful and
side, the
insult,
is
a
real
one which
I
have known to be seriously used at the most twice,
and once, indeed,
it
was among the causes
incident of fratricide described above,
to have connection with the wife. is
so
bad that
sojourn
the
in
pronounce
I learnt of its
it
is
Trobriands,
and no native would
but in whispers, or consent to make any
mode
yet
it is
of abuse.
it
stands in no
?
It is
distinct relation to the
enormity or unpleasantness of the is
This expression
the psychology of this gradation
obvious that
incest
the imperative
existence only after a long
jokes about that incongruous
What
is
of the
act.
The maternal
absolutely and completely out of the question,
the mildest abuse.
of the action be
Nor can the
criminality
the reason for the various strengths of
the swearing, for the least criminal, in fact the lawful connection,
is
the most offensive
real cause is the plausibility
and
when imputed.
The
and the
reality of the act,
and
social degradation
the feeUng of shame, anger,
at the barriers of etiquette being pulled
down and the
THE MIRROR OF TRADITION naked
reality
brought to
masked by a most
is
rigid
not so strict of course as that between
etiquette,
brother and tion of
For the sexual intimacy
light.
between husband and wife
107
sister,
but directly aiming at the elimina-
any suggestive modes
jokes and indecencies
Sexual
of behaviour.
must not be pronounced
And
in the
company
of the
two
personal,
direct
sexuality of the relation in coarse
language
is
consorts.
a mortal offence to the sensitiveness of the
Trobrianders. This psychology just because
abuse
discloses that
it
is
extremely interesting,
one of the main forces of
the relation between the reality and
in
lies
to drag out the
plausibility of a desire or action
and
its
conventional
repressions.
The
between the abuse by mother and by
relation
sister incest is
made
Its strength is
measured mainly by the likehhood of
clear
by the same psychology.
reality corresponding to the imputation.
mother incest,
incest
is
The idea
as repugnant to the native as
probably even more.
But
of
sister
just because, as
we
saw, the whole development of the relationship and of sexual
life
makes incestuous temptations
of the
almost absent, while the taboo against the
mother
sister is
imposed with great brutality and kept up with
rigid
strength, the real inclination to break the strong taboo is
much more
actual.
Hence
this
abuse wounds to the
quick.
There
is
nothing to be said about proverbs in the
^
:
SEX AND REPRESSION
io8
As
Trobriands, for they do not exist. sayings and other linguistic uses,
I shall
and mutual
mention here
my
the important fact of the word luguta,
used in magic as a word which
to the typical
sister,
being
signifies incompatibility
repulsion.
We pass now to myth and legend, that is, to the stories told with a serious purpose in explanation of things,
and customs. To make the survey
institutions,
of this
very extensive and rich material clear yet rapid, we shall
these
classify
Myths
(i)
of the origin of
three
into
stories
man, and
categories
of the general
order of society, and especially totemic divisions and social ranks
;
(2)
Myths
ments which contain
of cultural
stories
change and achieve-
about heroic deeds, about
the establishment of customs, cultural features and social institutions
;
(3)
Myths associated with
definite
forms of magic.
The
matrilineal character of the culture meets us at
once in the origins of
first class,
man,
that
is,
in the
myths about the
of the social order, especially chieftain-
ship and totemic divisions, and of the various clans
and
sub-clans.
These myths, which are numerous, for
every locality has
its
own
a sort of connected cycle. beijUgs
Cf.
They
all
agree that
human
have emerged from underground through holes
in the earth. ^
legends or variations, form
Every sub-clan has
its
own
place of
the chapter on Mythology in Argonauts of the Western Pacific,
especially pp. 304 sqq.
THE MIRROR OF TRADITION
109
emergence, and the events which happened on this
momentous
determined
occasion
sometimes
privileges or disabilities of the sub-clan.
us most in them
appearance
is
that the
first
What
interests
ancestral groups
whose
mentioned in the myth consist always
is
woman, sometimes accompanied by her
of a
the
brother,
sometimes by the totemic animal, but never by a husband. In some of the myths the of the first ancestress
is
mode of propagating
explicitly described.
She
starts
the line of her descendants by imprudent exposure to the rain
or,
lying in a grotto,
of the stalactites
She
enters her
pierced
or bathing she
;
opened up
'
is
is
'
in this
womb and
is
by the dripping
bitten
way, and a
by a
fish.
spirit child
she becomes pregnant.^
Thus
instead of the creative force of a father, the mjrths
spontaneous procreative powers
the
reveal
of
the
ancestral mother.
Nor
there
is
appears. exist in
In
any other
fact,
any part
he
is
role in
which the father
never mentioned, and does not
of the mythological world.
Most
of
^ Freudians will be interested in the psychology of symbolism underlying these myths. It must be noted that the natives have no idea whatever of the fertilizing influence of the male semen, but they
know
that a virgin cannot conceive, and that to become a mother a has to be opened up as they express it. This in the everyday life of the village is done at an early age by the appropriate organ.
woman In the
'
myth
'
of the primeval ancestress,
sexually eligible male companion is
selected,
such as a
fish or
is
where the husband or any
excluded,
a stalactite.
some natural object
Cf. for further material
this subject my article in Psyche, Oct., 1923, reprinted as The Father in Primitive Psychology, 1927.
on
SEX AND REPRESSION
no
myths have come down
these local
in very
rudimentary
form, some containing only one incident or an affirma-
and
tion of right
Those
privilege.
of
them which
contain a conflict or a dramatic incident, elements invariably
a
matriUneal family and the drama happening within
it.
There
them
is
ungarbled
in
essential
myth,
depict
a quarrel between two brothers which makes Or, again, in
separate, each taking his sister.
another myth, two sisters set out, disagree, separate
and found two In a
different communities.
myth which might perhaps be
classed in this
group, and which accounts for the loss of immortahty, or,
to put
human
more
it
beings,
it is
correctly, of perpetual
youth by
the quarrel between grandmother
and granddaughter which brings about the catastrophe.
—
Matrihny female
in the fact that descent is
reckoned by the
—mother-right—in the great importance of the
part played
by women, the matriarchal configuration
of kinship, in the dissensions of brothers
pattern of the matrihneal family, structure of single
myth
myths
is
of this category.
of origins in
plays any part, or even
—in short, the
evident in the
There
is
not a
which a husband or a father
makes
his appearance.
matrihneal nature of the mythological drama
That the is
closely
associated with the matrihneal repressions within the
family should need no further argument to convince
a psycho-analyst. Let us
now
turn to the second class of myths, those
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; THE MIRROR OF TRADITION
iii
referring to certain big cultural achievements brought
about by heroic deeds and important adventures. This class of
myth is less rudimentary,
consists of long cycles,
and develops pronouncedly dramatic most important cycle
bom
Tudava, a hero
of a virgin
number
celebrated in a
of myths,
the
is
who was
The deeds
action of stalactite water.
The
incidents.
of this category
myth
pierced
of
by the
of this hero are
which
differ slightly
according to the district in which they are found, and
which ascribe to him the introduction
and the rules,
institution of a
of
customs and moral
though his own moral character
The main deed
developed.
one known of all the
all
over the
myths,
runs as follows
Humanity Archipelago.
Dokonikan part
number
of
is
of agriculture
is
very weakly
of this hero, however, the
district,
and forming the bedrock
the slaying of an ogre.
The story
happy existence
Trobriand
:
led a
Suddenly
made
dreadful
ogre
called
appearance in the
his
the islands.
a
in the
He
At the north-western end
fed
on human
community
gradually consumed one
eastern
flesh
after
and
another.
of the island in the village of
Laba'i there lived at that time a family consisting of
a
sister
When Dokonikan
and her brothers.
ranged
nearer and nearer to Laba'i the family decided to
The
sister,
however, at that
moment wounded
fly.
her foot
and was unable to move. She was therefore abandoned
by her
brothers,
who
left
her with her
little
son in a
SEX AND REPRESSION
112
and
grotto on the beach of Laba'i,
sailed
away
in
The boy was brought up taught him first the choice of proper who by his mother, wood for a strong spear, then instructed him in the Kwoygapani magic which steals away a man's undera canoe to the south-west.
The hero
standing.
sallied forth,
and
after
having
bewitched Dokonikan with the Kwoygapani magic, killed
him and cut
off his
After that he and his
head.
mother prepared a taro pudding,
Tudava
brother. in
of the ogre.
sailed
which the uncle with horror and dismay found the
head
of
Dokonikan. Seized with fear and remorse, the
mother's brother offered his nephew in
which they hid
With this gruesome away in search of his mother's When he found him he gave him the pudding,
and baked the head dish
in
atonement
to the ogre.
for
all sorts
of gifts
having abandoned him and his mother
The hero refused
ever5rthing,
and was only
appeased after he had received his uncle's daughter in marriage.
After that he set out again and performed
a number of cultural deeds, which do not interest us further in this context.
In this
drama
in
myth
there are two conflicts which set the
motion
:
first
the cannibalistic appetite of
the ogre, and second the abandonment of mother and
The second
son by the maternal uncle. matrilineal drama,
natural
tendency,
and
is
a typical
corresponds distinctly to the
repressed
custom, as we have found
it
by
tribal
morals
and
in our analysis of the
THE MIRROR OF TRADITION
For the mother's
matrilineal family in the Trobriands.
brother
the appointed guardian of her and her family.
is
Yet
this
and
is
113
a duty which both weighs heavily upon him,
is
not always gratefully and pleasantly received by
Thus
his wards.
characteristic that the opening
it is
of the
most important heroic drama
should
be associated with
a
in
capital
mythology of
sin
the
matriarch's neglect of his duty.
But
second matriarchal conflict
this
independent of the his
head
uncle.
is
is
not altogether
When Dokonikan
first.
is
killed
wood to the maternal frighten him by the sight of
presented in a dish of
If it
were only to
the monster, there would be no point in disguising the
head
in the taro pudding.
was the general enemy head should have
filled
setting of this incident it,
receive
Moreover, since Dokonikan
of humanity, the sight of his
the uncle with joy.
meaning only
if
we assume
sort of association or connivance
and the
The whole
and the emotion which underlies that there
is
some
between the ogre
In that case, to give one cannibal's
uncle.
head to be eaten by the other
is
just the right sort of
punishment, and the story contains then in reality one villain
and one
conflict distributed
over two stages and
Thus we
duplicated into two persons.
see that the
legend of Tudava contains a typical matrilineal drama
which forms
its core,
conclusion.
I
having
shall
pointed
and which remain
out
is
brought to a logical
satisfied,
those
therefore,
with
which
are
features
SEX AND REPRESSION
114
and are
indisputable,
themselves, and
I shall
interpretations of this certain historical I
clearly contained in the facts
not enter in detail into further
myth, which would necessitate
wish to suggest that the figure of Dokonikan explained
altogether
But
and mythological hypotheses.
matriarch, that he
by
may
patriarchal culture into
his
is
with
association
matriarchal one, in which
a;
culture moulds fit
them
If
the present legend would be extremely
interesting in showing
to
the
be a figure handed from a
case he might represent the father and husband. this be so,
not
the prevalent cast of a
and transforms persons and
into its
own
Another incident indicate here,
how
is
situations
sociological context.
in this
myth which
shall only
I
the marriage at the end of the story
of the hero to his maternal cross-cousin.
present kinship system of the natives,
This, in the
considered
is
an improper thing, though not actually
distinctly
incestuous.
Passing to another legendary cycle, of
we have the story
two brothers who quarrel over a garden
often happens in real elder kills the younger.
compunction
life
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;and
plot
The myth does not
for this act.
It
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;as so
in this quarrel the relate
any
describes, instead, in
detail the culinary anti-climax of the
drama
;
the elder
brother digs a hole in the ground, brings stones, leaves
and firewood, and, as if he had just out a big
fish,
killed a pig or
hauled
he proceeds to bake his brother in an
THE MIRROR OF TRADITION earthen oven.
Then he hawks the baked
from one village to another, rebaking time when
become
flesh
about
from time to
it
his olfactory sense indicates the necessity
Those communities which decline
of such a procedure. his offer
115
remain non-cannibalistic ever
flesh-eaters
cannibaUsm
is
traced
to
those which accept
;
Thus
afterwards.
a
fratricidal
act,
preference or dislike for a food thus criminally sinfully obtained.
Needless to say, this
the non-cannibalistic tribes only.
between cannibalism
by the man-eating
and
the
The same
absence
to
and
myth
of
difference
is
explained
Dobu and
the other
its
natives of
is
here
and
cannibalistic districts of the d'Entrecasteaux Islands
by a story in which cannibalism is as anything unpleasant. sists in
a difference,
if
certainly not
This story
also,
branded
however, con-
not in an actual quarrel between
What mainly
two brothers and two
sisters.^
us in these myths
the matrilineal imprint which
is
interests
they possess in the quarrel between elder and younger brother.
The myth about the
origins
of
fire,
which also
contains a brief mention of the origins of sun and moon, describes dissension between
added that in a
fire
in this
myth
two
is
sisters.
It
may
be
described as originating
woman's sexual organs.
* These myths have already been given in Argonauts of the Western Pacific. Chapter on Mythology ', pp. 321-331-332. '
SEX AND REPRESSION
ii6
The reader accustomed pretations
myth
of
psycho-analytic inter-
to
and
and
psychological
to
anthropological writings on the subject in general, will
my
remarks
sophisticated.
All that
find
all
is
said here
on the surface of the myth, and
I
I
is
clearly written
have hardly attempted
any complicated or symbolic however,
and un-
simple
singularly
This,
interpretation.
refrained from doing on purpose.
For the
thesis here developed that in a matriarchal society will contain conflicts of a specifically matrilineal is
better served
argiunents.
if
supported only by unquestionable
Moreover,
sociological point of
nearer towards the
then
it
is
if
I
right,
and
if
but can confidently
interpretation of myth,
we need
let
not rely so
much on
of the matrilineal
we understand
symbolic rehandling, be
The
made
to
conflict
many
of
as direct results
complex could, by
patriarchal outlook.
facts,
the facts speak for themselves.
be obvious to any attentive reader that
the situations which
our
view brings us really one step correct
clear that
am
roundabout or symbolic reinterpretations of
It will
myth
nature
artificial
and
correspond to a
between mother's
who should be natural protectors and always keep common cause, but who often in
brother and nephew,
reality regard each other as
the
fight
brothers,
one ogre might another,
and cannibaUstic violence between two
who
in tribal
law form one body,
all
this
corresponds roughly to analogous conflicts within a
THE MIRROR OF TRADITION And
patriarchal family.
it is
just the difference in the
which distinguishes the
actors, in the cast of the play,
matriarchal from the patriarchal myth. sociological point of
The foundations
myth we have
117
It
view of the tragedy which
the
is
differs.
of the psycho-analytic explanations of
We
no way shaken.
in
have merely
corrected the sociology of this interpretation.
That
correction, however, is of extreme importance,
and even
this
bears upon fundamental psychological problems, has, I trust,
been made
sufficiently clear.
now
Let us pass
to the third class of
myth, that
which we find at the basis of cultural achievement Magic plays an extremely important
and magic.
part in everything which these natives do.
ever they approach any subject which
is
Whenof
vital
importance to them and in which they cannot rely solely
on their
dangers
they
forces,
summon magic
To master wind and weather,
to their aid. off
own
in
saihng,
to
secure
to
success in
ward love,
ceremonial trading or dancing, the natives perform magic.
Black magic and magic of health play a very
great role in their social
economic fishing,
activities
and
exists
of the super-normal
myth
is
in the
important
such as gardening,
of canoes,
and important element.
magic and myth there
in
and
enterprises,
and the construction
as an intrinsic
Most
life,
magic enters
Now
between
an intimate connexion.
power displayed by the heroes
due to their knowledge of magic.
Present
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; SEX AND REPRESSION
ii8
humanity
tj^es of magic have been
and the powerful through the
air,
mythical
that nowadays the most
past in
the
of
from the great
differs
lost.
heroes
effective
Could the strong
men
spells
could
fly
rejuvenate and thus retain their
life
be recovered,
rites
for ever, kill people
and bring them to
life
again, be
always beautiful, successful, loved and praised.
But
it is
myth which draws
not only
Magic
magic.
is
also dependent
every type of spell and foundation. explains
The natives
how
has
rite
tell
lies
influence
myths
This
of its efficiency.
In
in magic,
and
since
social institutions,
magic shapes
myth
exercises
upon them.
now
pass to a few concrete examples of such
of magic.
It will
of one detailed case
myth
mythological
perhaps the main sociological influence of
and maintains many Let us
its
Almost
magic came into man's possession,
this
myth. For myth Hves
its
power from
a story of the past which
and which serves as a warrant this
its
upon myth.
first,
be best to discuss the question*
and
for this I shall choose the
of the flying canoe already published in extenso.^
myth
is
narrated in connexion with the ship-
building magic used told about a time
by the
when
natives.
A
long story
is
there existed magic which,
performed during the construction of a canoe, could
make it fly through the air. The hero of this story, the man who was the last and as it seems also the first
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
^
op.
ciL, pp.
421 sqq.
THE MIRROR OF TRADITION to perform
We
magician. is built it
;
depicted in his role of ship-builder and
are told
how under
his direction a
canoe
how, on an overseas expedition to the south,
outruns
have to
it, is
119
all others, flying
sail
;
how
its
Now
while they
air
owner obtains an overwhelming
success in the expedition.
of the story.
through the
This
is
happy beginning
the
comes the tragedy. All the men in
the community are jealous and fuU of hatred against the hero. Another incident occurs. also of a successful garden magic,
He
and
he can also damage his neighbours. drought
men
his
of his
in possession
is
of one
by which
In a general
Then
all
the
community determine that he must
die.
garden alone survives.
The younger brother
of the hero
had received from him
the canoe magic and the garden magic.
So no one
thought that by IdUing the elder brother they would
The criminal deed
also lose the magic.
and
it is
is
performed,
done not by any strangers, but by the younger
brother of the hero. hero's maternal
In one of the versions he and the
nephews kiU him
in
a joint attack. In
another version again, the story proceeds to after
he has
killed his elder brother,
tell
how,
he then proceeds
The point
to organize the mortuary festivities for him.
of the story remains in the fact that after the deed
was
done, and the younger brother tried to apply the
magic to a canoe, he found out with dismay that he was not in possession of the part.
Thus humanity
full
magic, but only of
lost the flying
magic
its
weaker
for ever.
SEX AND REPRESSION
120 In this
myth
the matriHneal complex comes power-
The
fully to the fore.
hero,
whose duty
it is
to tribal law to share the magic with
his
according
younger
brother and maternal nephew, cheats them, to put
by pretending that he has handed them
in plain terms,
over
all
up an
it
the spells and rites while in reality he only gave
The younger man, on the
insignificant fraction.
other hand, whose duty
would be to protect
it
his
brother, to avenge his death, to share all his interests,
we
find at the
head
of the conspiracy,
red-handed
with fratricidal murder. If
we compare
this
sociological reality It is the
duty
we
of every
mythical situation with the find a strange correspondence.
man to hand over to his maternal
nephew or younger brother the hereditary possessions of the family, such as family
family songs
as well as the titles to certain material
;
and economic
possessions
myth, family magic and
rites.
The handing over
of
magic has obviously to be done during the life-time of the elder man. privileges
The
cession of property rights
also frequently
is
is interesting
done before his death.
that such lawful acquisition
the goods which are due to
and
him by
by a man
It
of
inheritance from his
maternal uncle or elder brother has always to be done against
a
frequently
type is
of
payment
called
very substantial indeed.
pokala, It is still
which
more
important to note that when a father gives certain properties to his son he always does
it
for nothing, out
THE MIRROR OF TRADITION In actual
of sheer affection.
the mythological
life,
swindle of the younger by the elder brother
There
very often paralleled.
is
121
is
always a feeling of
uncertainty, always a mutual suspicion between the
people
who
interests
in tribal
and
also
law should be at one in
two
common
reciprocal duties as well as in affection.
Ever so often w^hen obtaining magic from a man,
I
became aware that he was himself doubtful whether he
had not been cheated out from
magic as a
find
some
his uncle or elder brother.
never in the mind of a
now
of
gift
from the
in possession
of
it
in receiving it
Such a doubt was
man who had
father.
of important
received his
Survepng the people systems of magic,
I
that more than half of the outstanding
also
younger magicians have
powers by
obtained their
paternal gift and not by maternal inheritance.
Thus
in real
life,
as well as in myth,
we
see that the
situation corresponds to a complex, to a repressed
sentiment, and
is
at cross variance with tribal law
and
conventional tribal ideals. According to law and morals,
two brothers or a maternal uncle and friends, allies,
common.
and have
In real
life
all feelings
his
and
nephew are interests
to a certain degree
in
and quite
openly in myth, they are enemies, cheat each other,
murder each
other,
and suspicion and hostihty obtain
rather than love and union.
One more attention
:
feature in the canoe m3rth deserves our
in
an epilogue to the myth we are told that
SEX AND REPRESSION
122
the three sisters of the hero are angry with the younger brother because he has killed the elder one without learning
the
They had already
magic.
learnt
it,
however, and, though, being women, they could not build or sail flying canoes,
through the
they were
able
to
fly
After the crime had
air as flying witches.
been committed they flew away, each of them settling
we see the characteristic matrihneal position of woman, who learns magic first before man has acquired it. The sisters also in a different district.
In this episode
appear as moral guardians of the clan, but their wrath is
directed not
against the crime,
mutilation of clan property.
known sisters
Had
but against the
the younger brother
the magic before kiUing the elder, the three
would have lived on happily with him
for ever
after.
Another
fragmentary
deserves our attention,^
myth already the myth about
published the origins
of salvage magic, in cases of shipwreck. There were brothers, the elder a
two
man, the younger a dog. One day
the senior goes on a fishing expedition, but he refuses to take the younger one with him.
The dog, who has
acquired the magic of safe swimming from the mother, follows the elder one, diving under water. In the fishing
the dog
is
more
successful.
In retahation for the
ill-
treatment received from the elder brother, the dog
changes his clan and bequeaths the magic to his adopted 1
op.
cit.,
pp. 262-264.
THE MIRROR OF TRADITION kinsmen.
The drama
in the favouring
of this
myth
by the mother
consists first of all
of the second son, a
distinctly matrilineal feature, in that the
distributes her favours directly,
123
mother here
and does not need to
cheat the father hke her better-known colleague in the Bible, the mother of Esau and Jacob. There
is
also
the typical matriUneal quarrel, the wronging of the
younger brother by the
One more important
elder,
and
retaliation.
story has to be given here
:
the legend about the origin of love magic, which forms
the most telling piece of evidence with regard to the influence of the matriUneal complex.
Among
these
amorous people the arts of seduction, of pleasing, of impressing the other sex, lead to the display of beauty, of prowess,
and
of artistic abihties.
The fame
dancer, of a good singer, of a warrior, has side, its
of a its
good
sexual
and though ambition has a powerful sway for
own
of love.
prosaic
sake,
some
of
it is
always sacrificed on the altar
But above aU the other means and crude
art of
magic
is
of seduction the
extensively used,
and
commands the supreme respect of the natives. The tribal Don Juan will boast about his magic rather than any personal qualities. The less successful swain will " If I only knew the real Kayroiwo " sigh for magic The natives will is the burden of the broken heart. point to old, ugly, and crippled men who yet have been always successful in love by means of their magic.
it
:
This magic
is
not simple.
There
is
a series of acts,
SEX AND REPRESSION
124
each consisting of a special formula and
have to be carried out one exercise an increasing
may
It
by
its rite,
charm upon the desired
be added at once that the magic
girls to
which
after the other in order to
is
lover.
carried out
capture an admirer as well as by youths to
subdue a sweetheart.
The
initial
in the sea.
formula
is
associated with the ritual bathe
A formula is uttered over the spongy leaves
which are used by the natives as a bathing towel to dry and rub the skin. The bather rubs his skin with the bewitched leaves, then throws them into the waves;
As the leaves heave up and down the beloved one be
formula
is
moved by
sufficient
;
resort to a stronger one.
if
so shall the inside of
Sometimes
passion.
this
not, the spurned lover will
The second formula
is
chanted
over betel-nut, which the lover then chews and spits out in the direction of his beloved.
If
even this should
prove unavailing, a third formula, stronger than the
two preceding
ones,
is
as betel-nut or tobacco,
recited over
some dainty, such
and the morsel
desired one to eat, chew, or smoke. drastic
measure
is
is
given to the
An
even more
to utter the magic into the open
palms and attempt to press them against the bosom of the beloved.
The out
last
and most powerful method might, with-
pushing
the
psycho-analytic.
simile
too
far,
be
described
as
In fact, long before Freud had dis-
covered the predominantly erotic nature of dreams.
THE MIRROR OF TRADITION similar theories were in
125
vogue among the brown-skinned
savages of north-west Melanesia.
According to their
The
view, certain forms of magic can produce dreams.
engendered
wish
dreams
such
in
penetrates
and thus the dream- wish becomes
waking
life
This
Freudianism turned upside-down
is
theory
is
correct
and which
is
realized.
but which
;
erroneous
into
shall not
I
As regards love magic, there
try definitely to settle.
is
a method of brewing certain aromatic herbs in coconut oil
and uttering a formula over them, which gives them
a powerful dream-inducing property.
maker be
making the smeU
successful in
the magic-
If
of this
brew
enter the nostrils of his beloved, she will be sure to
dream
of him.
In this dream she
undergo experiences which she
rite,
if
or
attempt
the several forms of love magic that of the
ascribed to
price
and
life.
sulumwoya is by far the most important is
visions
will inevitably
to translate into deeds in actual
Among
may have
it,
and
it
.
A great potency
commands a
considerable
a native wants to purchase the formula and the if
he wants
This magic
is
it
to be performed on his behalf.
locaUzed in two centres.
on the eastern shore
of the
main
of clean coral sand overlooks the
west, where reef there
One
island.
of
A
them
fine
lies
beach
open sea towards the
beyond the white breakers on the fringing
may
be seen on a clear day silhouettes
distant raised coral rocks.
Among them
of Iwa, the second centre of love magic.
is
of
the island
The spot on
SEX AND REPRESSION
126
the main island, which of the village of like
is
the bathing and boating beach
Kumilabwaga,
is
to the natives almost
a holy shrine of love. There, in the white limestone
beyond the
of
fringe
luxuriant
grotto where the primeval tragedy
vegetation
is
the
was consummated
;
there on both sides of the grotto are the two springs
which
A
still
possess the
beautiful
myth
power
of inspiring love
two spots facing each other across the
is
ritual.
sea.
One
of the
myth is that it accounts love-magic by what to the natives
most interesting aspects for the existence of
by
of magic and love connects these
of this
a horrible and tragic event, an act of incest between
brother and
In this the story shows some affinity
sister.
to the legends of Tristan
and
and
Isolde, Lancelot
Guinevere, Sigmund and Sigelinde, as well as to a
number
of similar tales in savage communities.
There hved in the village of Kumilabwaga a of the Malasi clan
who had a son and
woman One
a daughter.
day while the mother was cutting out her fibre-petticoat, the son,
made some magic
gain the love of a certain
over herbs.
This he did to
woman. He placed some of the
pungent kwayawaga leaves and some of the sweetscented sulumwoya
(mint)
and boiled the mixture, he poured
it
into clarified coconut
reciting the spell over
into a receptacle
banana-leaves and placed
it
went to the sea to bathe.
His
made
of
it.
toughened
in the thatch. sister in
oil
Then
He
then
the meantime
had made ready to go to the water hole to
fill
the
THE MIRROR OF TRADITION
As she passed under
coconut bottles with water. the
spot
where
magical
the
she brushed against the
and some
of the oil
brushed
off
it
had been put,
oil
with
receptacle
dropped down over
her hair
She
her.
with her fingers, and then sniffed at
When she
them.
127
returned with the water she asked her
mother, " Where
is
the man, where
is
my
brother
" ?
This according to native moral ideas was a dreadful thing to do, for no
girl
should inquire about her brother,
nor should she speak of him as a man. guessed what had happened.
my
" Alas,
The
sister
leaf.
tried to
the
She said to herself
:
children have lost their minds."
ran after her brother.
the beach where he was bathing.
pubic
The mother
She loosened her
approach him.
She found him on
He was
fibre skirt
Horrified
without his
and naked she
by this dreadful
sight
man ran away along the beach tiU he was barred by
the precipitous rock which on the north cuts off the
Bokaraywata beach.
He
other rock which stands
turned and ran back to the
up
steep and inaccessible at
the southern end. Thus they ran three times along the
beach under the shade of the big overhanging trees
till
the man, exhausted and overcome, allowed his sister to catch hold of him, in the shallow
and the two
fell
down, embracing
water of the caressing waves.
ashamed and remorseful, but with the
fire
Then,
of their love
not quenched, they went to the grotto of Bokaraywata
where they remained without food, without drink, and
SEX AND REPRESSION
128
without
There also they died, clasped in one
sleep.
another's arms, and through their linked bodies there
grew the sweet-smelling plant of the native mint (sulumwoya).
A man
in the island of
Iwa dreamt the
He saw
magical dream of this tragic event.
He
before him.
woke, and said
growing out of their bodies.
the vision
The two
are dead
must go." He took
I
is
his
he sailed across the sea between his island and
;
that of Kitava. island,
till
Then from Kitava he went
to the
he alighted on the tragic beach.
saw the reef-heron hovering over the in
the
Bokaraywata and the sulumwoya
in the grotto of
canoe
"
:
kirisala,
grotto.
He went
and he saw the sulumwoya plant growing out
lovers' chests.
He then went to the
avowed the shame which had
village.
main
There he
of the
The mother
on her family.
fallen
She gave him the magical formula, which he learned
by heart. He took part of off
it
some
in
part of the spell over to
Kumilabwaga.
of the mint,
to Iwa, to his island. tip of the
There of
magic
left
At the grotto he plucked
and took
it
with him.
He said
"
I
its
;
it will stay,
Iwa and
:
He returned
have brought here the
roots remain in
Kumilabwaga.
connected with the bathing passage
Kadiusawasa and with the water
In one spring the
women." The man
men must of
of
Bokaraywata.
bathe, in the other the
Iwa then imposed the taboos
of
the magic, he prescribed exactly the ritual and he stipulated that a substantial
payment should be made
THE MIRROR OF TRADITION to the people of
129
Iwa and Kumilabwaga, when they
allowed others to use their magic or to use their sacred spots.
There
is
also a traditional miracle or at least
an
augury to those who perform the magic on the beach.
myth this is represented as laid down by the man Iwa when the magic is performed and good results
In the of
;
can be foreseen two small
fish will
be seen playing
together in the shallow water of the beach. I
have but summarized here
myth, for
this last part of the
form contains sociological claims
its literal
which are wearisome and degenerate into boastings
;
the account of the miraculous element usually leads into reminiscences from the immediate past details develop into technicalities
But
into prescriptive homilies. this last part of practical,
personal interest, rest,
;
the ritual
and the Ust
of taboos
to the native narrator
pragmatic, and often of
perhaps more important than the
is
and the anthropologist has more to learn from
than from the preceding dramatic
tale.
The
it
sociological
claims are contained in the myth, since the magic to
which
it
refers is personal property. It
has to be handed
over from a fully entitled possessor to one acquires
it
from him.
in correct tradition.
The fact
the present ofhciator of
All the force of
is
rites
and
all its
lawfully
magic consists
of direct filiation
by which
linked to the original source is
paramount relevance.
the names of
who
In certain magical formulae
wielders are enumerated.
spells the conviction that
In
all
they are absolutely
SEX AND REPRESSION
130 in
conformity with the original pattern
And myth
is
essential.
figures as the ultimate source, as the last
pattern of this retrogressive series.
It is
again the
charter of magical succession, the starting-point of the pedigree.
In connection with this a few words must be said
about the social setting of magic and myth. Some forms of
magic are not
Here belong sorcery, love
localized.
magic, beauty niagic, and the magic of Kula. these forms fihation it is
not
filiation
by
with
a
associated
industries of a
is
none the
kinship.
given
less
important, although
Other forms of magic are territory,
All
with
the
local
community, with certain paramount and
exclusive claims, vested in a chief village.
In
and
garden magic belongs here
which must be born of the thus be efficacious.
soil,
capital
in his
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; the
on which
it
can only
Here belongs the magic
shark and other fishing of a local character.
magic
of the
Here also
belong certain forms of canoe magic, that of the red
sheU used for ornaments, and, above
all,
waygigi, the
supreme magic of rain and sunshine, the exclusive privilege of the
paramount
chiefs of
Omarakana.
In these types of local magic the esoteric power of
words
who
is
as
much chained
inhabit the village
magic thus
is
to the locality as the group
and wield the magic.
The
not merely local but exclusive and
hereditary in a matrilineal kinship group. In these cases
the m5rth of magic must be placed side by side with the
-
THE MIRROR OF TRADITION myth
of local origins as
force welding the
131
an essentially sociological
group together, supplying
its
quota
to the sentiment of unity, endowing the group with a
common
cultural value.
The other element conspicuous
in the
end
of the
above story and present also in most other magic
myths
the enumeration of portents, auguries, and
is
miracles.
It
might be said that as the local myth
establishes the claims of the group
magical
myth
vindicates
by precedent, so the
them by
Magic
miracle.
is
based upon the belief in a specific power, residing always
man, derived always from
in
of this
power
is
vouched
to be confirmed also
for
tradition.^
The
efficiency
by the myth, but
it
has
by the only thing which man ever
accepts as final proof, namely practical results.
"
By
man is not
their fruits ye shall
know them."
Primitive
eager than the
modem man
of science to confirm
less
his convictions faith,
And
empirical fact.
whether savage or
The empiricism
civilized religion
without
its
of
civilized, consists in miracles.
living behef will always generate miracles.
no
is
by
without its saints
and
There devils,
illuminations and tokens, without the spirit
God descending upon the community of the faithful. There is no new-fangled creed, no new religion, whether
of
be a form of Spiritism, Theosophy, or Christian
it
Science, ^
cf.
op. also
which cannot prove
its
legitimacy by the solid
chapters on " Magic " and " Power of Words in Magic ", Ogden and Richards' The Meaning of Meaning, chap. ii.
cit.,
SEX AND REPRESSION
132
The savage has
fact of 5lipematural manifestation.
also his thaumatology,
magic
dominates
all
and in the Trobriands, where supernaturalism,
thaumatology of magic. there
is
Round each form
of
a
is
it
magic
a continuous trickle of small miracles, at times
more conspicuously supernatural
swelling into bigger,
proofs, then again, running in a smaller stream,
but
never absent. In love magic, for instance, from the continuous boasting about
its success,
cases in which very ugly
famous
beauties,
it
through certain remarkable
men
arouse the passion of
has reached the climax of
its
miracle -worldng power in the recent notorious case of incest for
mentioned above. This crime
by an accident
is
often accounted
similar to that which befell the
mythical lovers, the brother and sister of Kumilabwaga.
Myth thus forms the background miracles
;
it
of all present-day
remains their pattern and standard.
might quote from other
stories
I
a similar relation
between the original miracle narrated by myth and repetition in the current miracles of living faith.
its
The
readers of The Argonauts of the Western Pacific will
remember how the mythology casts its
shadow on
modem
of ceremonial trading
custom and
practice.
In
the magic of rain and weather, of gardening and of fishing, there is
a strong tendency to see the original
miracle repeated in an attenuated form in outstanding
miraculous confirmations of magical power.
THE MIRROR OF TRADITION
133
Finally, the element of prescriptive injunction, the
laying
down
of ritual, taboos,
crops up towards the end
When
the
myth
of
of a certain
and
social regulations
most mythical narratives. magic
told
is
of the magic, he naturally will state his
by a wielder
own
functions
He beUeves himself to
as the outcome of the story.
at one with the original founder of the magic.
love myth, as
we have
seen, the locaUty in
primeval tragedy happened, with
and
its springs,
which the beach,
its grotto, its
becomes an important shrine infused
with the power of magic.
To the
local people,
longer have the exclusive monopoly prerogatives
be
In the
still
associated with the spot are of the
That part
greatest value.
who no
of magic, certain
of the ritual
which
still
remains bound to the locality naturally occupies their attention.
In the magic of rain and sunshine of
Omarakana, which chief's
power, the
is
one of the comer-stones of the
myth revolves round one or two local
features which also figure in present All sexual attraction,
all
day
ritual.
power of seduction,
is
believed to reside in the magic of love.
In the fishing of shark and of the kalala, specific
elements of the locality figure also. But even in these stories
which do not wed magic to
locality, long
prescriptions of ritual are either told as an integral
part of the narrative or else are put in the of the dramatis personae.
of
myth shows
The
its essentially
mouth
of
one
prescriptive character
pragmatic function,
its
^
SEX AND
134
REPRESSION
close association with ritual, with belief, with living
Myth has
culture.
often been described
psycho-analysis as " the secular
by
writers of
of the race ".
dream
This formula, even as a rough approximation,
is
incorrect in view of the practical and pragmatic nature of
myth
just established.
to touch
upon
It
has been necessary barely
this subject here, for
it is
treated more
fully in another place.
In this work lineal
trace the influence
upon
complex
by myself
I
one
culture
of
matri-
a
studied
only,
at first-hand in intensive field work.
But
much wider
application.
For myths of incest between brother and
sister are of
the results obtained have a
frequent
occurrence
especially in the Pacific,
elder
and younger
maternal uncle,
is
among
matriUneal
peoples,
and hatred and rivalry between
brother, or between
nephew and
a characteristic feature of the world's
folk-lore. ^
"
Myth
in Primitive Psychology," Psyche Miniatures,
1926.
;
PART
III
PSYCHO-ANALYSIS AND ANTHROPOLOGY I
THE RIFT BETWEEN PSYCHO-ANALYSIS AND SOCIAL SCIENCE.
nPHE
psycho-analytic theory of the (Edipus complex
was
first
framed without any reference to the This was only natural,
sociological or cultural setting.
for psycho-analysis started as a technique of treatment
based on
clinical observation.
was subsequently
It
expanded into a general account
of neuroses
;
then
into a theory of psychological processes in general finally it
in
became a system by which most phenomena
body and mind,
in society
and culture were to be
Such claims are obviously too ambitious,
explained.
but even their partial realization could have been possible only
through intelligent and whole-hearted
co-operation
between
and the various other have
become
principles
special
specialists.
acquainted
and been
of research.
experts
led
by
with
in
psycho-analysis
These
latter
might
psycho-analytical
these into
new avenues
In turn, they might have placed their
knowledge and their methods at the disposal
of psycho-analysts. 135
SEX AND REPRESSION
136
Unfortunately the new doctrine was not accorded a benevolent and intelligent reception
most
As a consequence we
analysis. rigid
side
and
and ignorance
on the contrary
of
find
a somewhat
on the psycho-analytic
seclusion
esoteric
:
ignored or combated psycho-
either
specialists
what
without doubt an
is
important contribution to psychology on the other. This book
is
an attempt at a collaboration between
anthropology and psycho-analysis.
Several
similar
attempts have also been made from the psycho-analytic side, as
article
since
an example
of
which
I shall
by Dr. Ernest Jones. ^ This
it
is
a criticism of the
is
first
take an interesting of special
moment,
part of this book,
which appeared as two preliminary
articles in 1924.2
Dr. Jones's essay will serve as a typical illustration of certain differences in the
method
of
approach of
anthropologists and of psycho-analysts to the problems of primitive society
;
it
is
especially suited for this
since the author, in his interpretation of mother-right
among
the
Melanesians,
his
understanding
of
the
complexity of their legal system and of their kinship organization, reveals his grasp of difficult anthropological questions. It will
be convenient here to give a short summary
of the views expressed
>
" Mother-Right
by Dr.
Jones.
The purpose
and the Sexual Ignorance of Savages,"
of
Inter-
national Journal of Psycho-Analysis, vol. vi, part 2, 1925, pp. 109-30. * " Psycho-Analysis and Anthropology," Psyche, vol. iv.
—
PSYCHO-ANALYSIS & ANTHROPOLOGY essay
his
psycho-analytic explanation
to give a
is
of the institution of mother-right
of paternity
of the ignorance
and
which obtains among certain primitive
According to the psycho-analyst these two
peoples.
phenomena
are not to be taken merely at their face their views
Thus savages, when propounding
value.
137
on procreation, display symbolism kind " as to indicate at least of the truth ".
And
of
such an accurate
an unconscious knowledge
this repressed cognizance of the
facts of paternity stands in the closest relationship to
the features of the mother-right, since each
by the same motive felt
—
this
of
actuated
the wish to deflect the hatred
by the growing boy towards
In support
is
his father.
Jones draws
hypothesis Dr.
upon the material from the
to a considerable extent
Trobriand Islands, but
differs
from
my
notably in regard to the central theme
conclusions,
—the
deter-
mination of the form of the nuclear family complex
by the
social
observed.
structure
the
of
particular
Dr. Jones adheres to Freud's theory of the
(Edipus complex as a fundamental
phenomenon.
He
is
—in fact primordial
it,
love for the
hatred against the father, the latter
is
important in leading to repression.
of birth
part
in
of escape
is
from the coitus
two
of the opinion that of the
elements which compose
avenue
culture
by
mother and far the
From
most
this
an
sought by simply denying the act
father, " repudiation of the father's
and procreation,
and consequently
SEX AND REPRESSION
138
softening and deflection of the hatred against
But the father
(p. 122).
" attitudes
of
awe,
not yet disposed
is
dread,
him
"
The
of.
and suppressed
respect
hostihty which are inseparable from the idea of the
imago
father
",
ambivalence of savages so the maternal uncle
scapegoat on
from
springing
whom
have
", is
still
" the
obsessional
to be dealt with,
chosen, so to speak, as the
can be heaped
all
the sins of the
older male in authority, while the father can continue
a friendly and pleasant existence within the household.
Thus we have a " decomposition
of the primal father
into a kind and lenient actual father on the one
and a
stern
and moral uncle on the other
other words
the
"
hand
(p. 125).
combination of mother-right
In
and
ignorance protects both father and son from their
maternal rivalry and the
(Edipus
hostility.
complex
matrilineal system with
...
as a
mode
is
its
For Dr. Jones, then,
fundamental
;
and
" the
avunculate complex arose,
of defence against
the primordial
(Edipus tendencies " (p. 128).
AU
these views will strike the readers of the
two parts of
and sound
this
first
book as not altogether unfamiliar,
in all the essentials.
am
not prepared to endorse unconditionally Dr.
Jones's
main contention that both mother-right and
I
ignorance of paternity have
come
into
being
" to
deflect the hatred towards his father felt by the growing boy " (p. 120). I think this statement requires
ANTHROPOLOGY
PSYCHO-ANALYSIS &
139
a fuller testing in the various anthropological provinces.
But
harmony
which
with
to be perfectly well in
with aU the facts which
have discovered
I
and with any other kinship systems
Melanesia,
in
me
view seems to
this
am
I
acquainted
through
Uterature.
Should Dr. Jones's hypothesis become established by subsequent research, as the value of
my own
think and hope
I
will be,
contributions will obviously
much enhanced. For
be very
it
instead of having
attention to a mere accidental constellation,
I
drawn should
have had the good fortune to discover phenomena
In a is
evolutionary
universal
of
way
seems to
it
me
and genetic importance.
that Dr. Jones's hypothesis
a daring and original extension of that
clusions,
must be
in
different
my own
con-
mother-right the family complex
from the (Edipus complex
the matrilineal conditions the hate
is
;
that in
removed from
the father and placed upon the maternal uncle
;
that
any incestuous temptations are directed towards the than towards the mother.
sister rather
Dr. Jones takes, however, not only a more compre-
hensive point of view, in which follow
him
;
he places,
besides,
am
I
a
prepared to
certain
causal
or metaphysical stress in that he regards the complex as the cause,
the
effect.
and the whole
sociological structure as
In Dr. Jones's essay, as in most psycho-
analytic interpretations of folk-lore, custom tions, the universal occurrence of the
and institu-
(Edipus complex
SEX AND REPRESSION
140 is
being assumed, as
if it
existed independently of the
type of culture, of the social organization and of the
Wherever we
concomitant ideas.
find
hatred between two males, one of them
folk-lore
in is
interpreted
as s5nTibolizing the father, the other the son, irrespective of
whether
in that society there are
tunities for a father
repressed or in
illicit
and son to
love
Again,
conflict.
passion which
mythological tragedies
any oppor-
we
all
find so often
due to the incestuous
is
between mother and son, even though such
temptations could be shown to have been eliminated by the type of organization prevalent in that community.
Consequently Dr. Jones in the maintains that while
my
results
the purely descriptive plane sociology
and
attention
is
of the data "
(p.
may
be correct " on
on
127).
which
And
I
insist
is
again that "if
concentrated on the sociological aspects
my view might
" appear a very ingenuous
and perhaps even plausible suggestion was only
quoted above
the correlation between
",
psychology
"extremely doubtful"
article
my
" imperfect
",
but that
aspects of the problem " which " has led to a lack of
a dimensional perspective,
it
attention to the genetic
i.e.
.
.
.
a sense of value based
on intimate knowledge of the unconscious" Dr. Jones arrives at the conclusion,
(p.
128).
somewhat crushing
to me, " that the opposite of Malinowski's conception is
nearer the truth "
The
(ibid).
radical discrepancy between psycho-analytical
PSYCHO-ANALYSIS &
ANTHROPOLOGY
and empirical anthropology or
doctrine
sociology
implied in these quotations does not seem to exist.
I
141
me
to
should not like to see psycho-analysis divorced
from the empirical science of culture, nor the descriptive
work
in
anthropology deprived of the assistance of
psycho-analytical
theory.
I
guilty of overemphasizing the either.
I
cannot
sociological
plead
elements
have tried to introduce these factors into
the formula of the nuclear complex, but
way minimized logical, or
myself
I
have
in
no
the importance of biological, psycho-
unconscious factors.
II
A iy yf
"
REPRESSED COMPLEX
Y main contention
is
"
and adequately
concisely
Dr. Jones himself as " the view
summed up by
that the nuclear family complex varies according to the particular family structure existing in
According to him
(i.e.
family system arises, for reasons,
and then
consists of brother
and uncle hatred patrilineal
one,
familiar CEdipus
;
to Malinowski)
a matrilineal
unknown
and economic
the
and
this
is
and
(pp. 127
remained throughout tive plane",
my
replaced by a
128).
my
As a
All this
previously
field-worker
opportunity of setting forth
I
shall presently take the
my
genetic views.
As has been already mentioned, the crux complex
absolute, the primordial source, in his el
of the
the fact that to Dr. Jones and other
psycho-analysts the (Edipus
Ions
have
I
essay on the " purely descrip-
but in this Part
difficulty lies in
is
views, though
my
Dr. Jones has gone beyond the scope of conclusions.
with nephew
complex becomes the
a perfectly correct interpretation of
published
complex
nuclear
system
nuclear
one"
social
repressed
sister attraction,
when
the
any community.
origo of everything. 142
To me on
is
something
own words the the other
hand
PSYCHO-ANALYSIS & ANTHROPOLOGY the nuclear family complex
143
a functional formation
is
dependent upon the structure and upon the culture of a society. in
It is necessarily
and by the manner I
determined by the manner
which sexual restrictions are moulded in
which authority
in a
apportioned.
is
cannot conceive of the complex as the
community
first
cause of
everything, as the unique source of culture, of organization
and
belief
;
as the metaphysical entity, creative,
but not created, prior to
anything Let
me
all
things and not caused
by
else.
quote some more significant passages from
Dr. Jones's article in order to indicate the obscurities
and contradictions illustrate the
orthodox
to
which
I
They
have alluded.
type of argument which we meet in the
psycho-analytic
discussions
savage
of
custom.
Even where they admittedly cannot be found in actual existence, as in the matrilineal societies of Melanesia,
the " primordial (Edipus tendencies " are
behind
lurking
still
The forbidden and unconsciously loved
only a substitute for the mother, as the uncle
sister is
plainly
"
:
is
In other words the
for the father" (p. 128).
merely screened by another one,
(Edipus complex
is
or painted over
by the other complex,
different
colours.
As a matter
of
uses an even stronger terminology
the " repression of the complex "
fact.
in
slightly
Dr.
Jones
and speaks about and about
" the
various complicated devices whereby this repression
SEX AND REPRESSION
144 is
brought about and maintained"
comes the first obscurity. a complex
is
I
And
(p. 120).
here
have always understood that
an actual configuration of attitudes and
sentiments partly overt, partly repressed, but actually existing in the unconscious.
Such a complex can always
be empirically reached by the practical methods of psycho-analysis,
and other If,
by the study
of mythology, folk-lore
cultural manifestations of the unconscious.
however, as Dr. Jones seems fully to admit, the
attitudes typical of the (Edipus complex cannot be
found either
in the conscious or unconscious
has been proved, there are no traces of
it
;
either in
Trobriand folk-lore or in dreams and visions, or
symptoms
other
;
if
in
any
we
in all these manifestations
find instead the other
complex
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;where
repressed (Edipus complex to be found
is ?
as
if,
then the Is there
a
sub-unconscious below the actual unconscious and
what does the concept Surely
all this
of a repressed repression
mean
?
goes beyond the ordinary psycho-analytic
doctrine and leads us into some
unknown
fields;
;
I
suspect moreover that they are the fields of meta-
physics
!
Let us turn to the devices by which the repression of the
complex
brought about.
is
According to Dr.
Jones they consist in a tendency to divorce relationship
and
social
kinship
in
the
various
customary
denials of actual birth, in the enactment of a ritual birth,
in
the affectation of ignorance of
paternity
PSYCHO-ANALYSIS & and
so on.
am
this I
would
I
like to state here at
much
very
point of view, though
Thus
I
am
ANTHROPOLOGY
once that in
agreement with Dr. Jones's
in I
145
might
differ in certain details.
not quite sure whether
I
would speak
of
a " tendentious denial of physical paternity " since
am
I
firmly convinced that the ignorance of these
complicated physiological processes direct as
is
of the gradual bodily decay,
secretion,
that happens in the
all
why we
as natural
is
and
the ignorance of the processes of digestion,
human
body.
in short,
of
do not know
I
should assume that people on a very low level
of culture
have received their early revelation about
certain aspects of embrj^ology while in all other aspects of natural science they
causal connections
the
divorce
and
biological
of I
the shall
or
know next
of
at
phenomena.
least
social
the
importance
try
demonstrate
That, however,
partial
autonomy
under
relations
greatest
to
to nothing a$ to the
in
culture
primitive
presently
of is
society at
some
length.
In the matter of ignorance of paternity, however, there seems to views.
me
a slight discrepancy in Dr. Jones's
In one place
collateral relationship
we
are told " there
procreation on the one
hand and the
mother-right on the other.
phenomena in
My
are brought about
what chronological
is
the closest
between ignorance about paternal
view
is
institution of
that both these
by the same motive
;
relation they stand to each other
SEX AND REPRESSION
146 is
another question altogether, which will be considered
The motive, according
later.
to this view, in both
cases is to deflect the hatred towards his father felt by the
growing boy "
The point
(p. 120).
is
crucial
and yet
Dr. Jones does not himself feel quite certain about
For
in
to
suppose
another place he
tells
us that there
savage
the
that
is
ignorance,
rather
or
repression, of the facts of paternal procreation
accompaniment
necessary it is
evident that
it
is
a
though
mother-right,
of
it.
no " reason
must be a valuable support
to the
motives discussed above which led to the instituting of mother-right " (p. 130).
two sentences quoted latter
lucid
is if
is
The
relation
not quite
between the
and while the
clear,
not quite correct the former would be more
we were
told
what the author means by the
" closest collateral relationship
".
Does that mean
that both ignorance and mother-right are necessary effects of the principal cause,
i.e.,
the (Edipus complex,
or are they both loosely connected with
it ?
If so
are the conditions under which the necessity to
the
(Edipus
ignorance,
complex
and what
leads
to
what
mask and
mother-right
are the conditions in which
does not lead to these effects
data Dr. Jones's theory
is
not
?
it
Without such concrete
much more than
a vague
suggestion.
Having examined the
devices, let us
at the " primordial cause ".
(Edipus
complex
conceived
This, as in
an
have a look
we know, absolute
is
the
and
PSYCHO-ANALYSIS & ANTHROPOLOGY genetically
transcendental
manner.
147
Going beyond
Dr. Jones's essay to the anthropological contributions of psycho-analysts in general,
complex being.
is
It
we learn how
the CEdipus
supposed to have originally come into originated
in the primeval horde.
by the famous totemic crime
.
Ill
"THE PRIMORDIAL CAUSE OF CULTURE" T^REUD'S
theory of the dramatic beginnings
totemism and taboo, of exogamy and of great importance
on anthropology.
It
in
all
of
sacrifice, is
psycho-analytic writings
cannot be passed over in any essay
which
like the present one,
tries
to
bring psycho-
analytic views into line with anthropological findings.
We
shall therefore take this
opportunity of entering
into a detailed critical analysis of the theory.
In his book on Totem and Taboo Freud shows
how
the OEdipus complex can serve to explain totemism
and the avoidance
of
the mother-in-law,
worship and the prohibitions of tion of
the
man
God
ancestor
incest, the identifica-
with his totemic animal and the idea of In fact the (Edipus complex, as
Father.*
we
know, has to be regarded by psycho-analysts as the source
of
culture,
as
having occurred before the
beginnings of culture, and in his book Freud gives us precisely the hypothesis describing
came
how
it
actually
into being.
In this Freud takes the cue from two illustrious predecessors, ^
S.
Darwin and Robertson Smith. New York, 1918. American Edition
Freud, Totem and Taboo,
in the text refer to the
148
From
The quotations
PSYCHO-ANALYSIS & ANTHROPOLOGY
149
of " primal horde " or as
it
was renamed by Atkinson " the Cyclopean family
".
Darwin he borrows the idea
According to this view the earUest form of family or social
life
consisted of small groups led and dominated
by a mature male who kept Freud
Robertson
Smith,
about
importance
the
the
suggestion
totemic
sacrament.
received
the
of
earliest
common meal
consisted of a
of
great student,
Robertson Smith considers that the religion
number
in subjection a
From another
females and children.
act of
which the
in
totemic animal was ceremonially eaten by the members
In later development
of the clan.
and certainly the most important rehgious act,
universal
The taboo forbidding
emerged from the totemic meal. the
eating
of
totemic
species
ordinary
at
these two hypotheses Freud added one of his
man common to
with the totem
the identification of the mentality neurotics,
and
some unpleasant animal.
In this context
we
are primarily interested in the
and
Says Darwin
:
"
We may
shaU quote in
I
the passage of Darwin's upon which
is
quadrupeds, armed, as for battling
many
of
with their
them
rivals,
built Freud's
indeed conclude
from what we know of the jealousy
weapons
:
a trait of
children, primitives
sociological side of the theory
theory.
is
own
based upon the tendency to identify the
father with
full
times
communion.
constitutes the negative side of the ritual
To
the almost
sacrifice,
are,
of
all
male
with special
that promiscuous
SEX AND REPRESSION
150
intercourse in a state of nature
...
If
we
is
extremely improbable.
enough into the
therefore look back far
stream of time and judging from the social habits
man
of
now
as he
exists,
the most probable view
is
that he originally lived in small communities, each with
a single wife, or
if
whom he Or he may
powerful with several,
jealously defended against all other men.
not have been a social animal and yet have lived with several wives, like the gorilla
that only the adult male
is
;
for all the natives agree
seen in a band
young male grows up a contest takes place and the
strongest,
by
killing
establishes himself as (Dr. vol.
;
when the
for
mastery
and driving out the
others,
the head of the community
Savage in the Boston Journal of Natural History, V,
1845-47).
The younger males thus being
when
driven out and wandering about would also, last successful in finding
at
a partner, prevent too close
inbreeding within the limits of the same family." I
may
speaks
Nor
is
man and
there
indiscriminately.
gorillas
any reason why we as anthropologists
should blame him for this confusion science can do
is
to deprive us of
insignificant, the distinction
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;the
any
regard to our anthropoid brethren sophically the difference between a is
Darwin
at once point out that in this passage
about
*
!
least
our
vanities with
But
man and
if
a
philo-
monkey
between family as we
* S. Freud, Totem and Taboo, 1918, pp. 207-208, quoted from Darwin, " The Descent of Man," vol. ii, chapter 20, pp. 603-604.
PSYCHO-ANALYSIS & find
among
it
human
He
sociologist.
extreme
of
is
importance
for
and human
life
To Darwin, who was developing a
culture.
argument
the
has to discriminate clearly between
in the state of nature
life
151
the anthropoid apes and the organized
family
animal
ANTHROPOLOGY
the
against
hypothesis
the distinction was irrelevant.
under
biological
promiscuity,
of
Had he been
dealing
with the origins of culture, had he tried to define the
moment
of its birth, the line of distinction
between
nature and culture would have been all-important.
Freud who, as we
shall see, actually does
attempt to
grasp and to render the " great event with which culture began
",
completely in his task in that
fails
he loses sight of this
line of division
and places culture
in conditions in which, ex hypothesi,
cannot
it
exist.
Darwin speaks, moreover, only about the wives
of
the leader of the herd, and not of any other females.
He
also states that the
excommunicated young males
succeed finally in finding a partner and do not trouble
any more about points
their parental family.
On
both these
Freud substantially modifies the Darwinian
hypothesis.
Let
me
quote the words of the master of psycho-
analysis in full so as to substantiate
Says Freud
" :
my
The Darwinian conception
criticism.
of the primal
horde does not, of course, allow for the beginnings of totemism.
who keeps
There all
is
only a violent, jealous father
the females for himself and drives
away
SEX AND REPRESSION
152
the growing sons "
made
see,
the old male
is
all the females for
himself while the
sons remain somewhere
in the neighbour-
to keep
expelled
As we
(p. 233).
hood, banded together, in order to be ready for the
And
hypothetical event.
up before our eyes
indeed a crime
as bloodcurdling as
it is
conjured
is
hypothetical,
yet of the greatest importance in the history of Psychoanalysis, it
is
if
not of
Humanity
destined to give birth to
It is " the great
it is
the " deed that
memorable,
was
criminal
234, 239, 265).
primordial cause of "
future civilization.
One day the
let
mankind come
in the beginning "
act
with
which
.
to rest " ;
.
it is
all
;
the
began
.
moral restrictions and religion
social organization, (pp.
all
event with which culture began and
which ever since has not "
For according to Freud
!
"
Let us hear the story of this culture.
expelled
brothers
joined
forces,
slew and ate the father, and thus put an end to the father horde.
Together they dared and accomplished
what would have remained impossible Perhaps some advance in culture,
for
like the
them
singly.
use of a
new
weapon, had given them the feeling of superiority.
Of course these cannibalistic savages ate their victim. This violent primal father had surely been the envied
and feared model
for each of the brothers.
Now
they
accomplished their identification with him by devouring
him and each acquired a part totem
feast,
which
is
of his strength.
The
perhaps mankind's first celebra-
PSYCHO-ANALYSIS & ANTHROPOLOGY tion,
would be the repetition and commemoration
of this
memorable
This in
.
.
act
.
"
.
.
middle "
about
" the use of a
the
of
(p. 234).
culture
and yet
the
author
description
some advance
new weapon with
animals
pre-cultural
.
human
the original act of
is
the
speaks
",
a
in
culture
about
",
and thus equips
his
store
of
substantial
cultural goods and implements. is
153
No
material culture
imaginable without the concomitant existence of
organization,
show
morality,
presently, this
is
and
religion.
As
not a mere quibble but
to the very heart of the matter.
We
shall
I it
goes
shall see that the
theory of Freud and Jones tries to explain the origins of
culture
by a process which
existence of culture
argument.
A
implies the previous
and hence involves a
circular
criticism of this position will in fact
naturally lead us right into the analysis of cultural process and of
its
foundations in biology.
IV
THE CONSEQUENCES OF THE PARRICIDE T3 EFORE we however, has to
pass a detailed criticism on this theory,
us patiently hear
let
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
us in this matter
tell
listening to him.
"...
together were dominated feelings
it is
that Freud
all
always worth while
the group of brothers banded
by the same contradictory
towards the father which we can demonstrate
complex
as the content of ambivalence of the father in all
They hated
our children and in neurotics.
father
who
sexual
demands and
stood so powerfully in the
way
their
of their
their desire for power, but they
also loved
and admired him.
their hate
by
After they had satisfied
removal and had carried out their
his
wish for identification with him, the suppressed tender impulses had to assert themselves. in the
This took place
form of remorse, a sense of
guilt
was formed
which coincided here with the remorse generally
felt.
The dead now became stronger than the
had
been, even of
men.
as
we observe
What
it
psychic situation of so
to-day in the destinies
the father's presence had formerly
prevented they themselves
know
living
weU from
'
now
prohibited
subsequent obedience
psycho-analysis. 154
'
in
the
which we
They undid
their
PSYCHO-ANALYSIS & ANTHROPOLOGY deed by declaring that the
the father
of
was not allowed, and renounced
substitute, the totem,
the fruits of their deed liberated
killing
by denying themselves the
Thus they created the two funda-
women.
mental taboos of totemism out of the sense of
and
of the son,
correspond with
for this
the
guilt
very reason these had to
two repressed wishes
the
the
of
Whoever disobeyed became
(Edipus complex. of
155
guilty
two only crimes which troubled primitive
society" (pp. 235-236).
We
see thus the parricidal sons immediately after
the act of murder engaged in laying religious taboos, instituting tion, in brief
forms of social organiza-
moulding cultural forms which
handed on
far
down
here again
we
are faced
raw material
down laws and will
the history of mankind.
by the dilemma
of culture exist already
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;in
:
be
And
did the
which case
the " great event " could not have created culture as
it is
supposed by Freud to have done, or was culture
at the time of the deed not yet in existence
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;in which
case the sons could not have instituted sacraments, established laws
and handed on customs.
Freud does not completely ignore he
hardly
seems
He
importance. possibilities
of
crime and of
to
have
this point,
recognized
its
though crucial
anticipates the question as to the
a lasting influence of the primeval its
enduring action across successive
generations of man.
To meet any
possible objections
"
SEX AND REPRESSION
156
Freud summons to his aid another hypothesis
" :
.
.
.
it
can hardly have escaped anyone that we base everything upon the assumption of a psyche of the mass in the psychic
which psychic processes occur as
in
hfe of the individual " of a
collective
endow
soul
is
But
(p. 259).
not
this
assumption
We
sufficient.
have to
comprehensive entity also with an almost
this
"... we
unhmited memory.
the sense of guilt
let
for a deed survive for thousands of years, remaining
effective in generations
which could not have known
We
anything of this deed.
such as might have arisen that had been ill-treated
new
to
Freud
is
of the father " (p. 259).
validity of
assumption but an argumentum ad hominem
his hypothesis
carry
the
260).
universal "
generations of sons
their fathers, to continue
somewhat uneasy about the
ready at hand.
(p.
among
by
generations which had escaped such treatment
by the very removal
this
allow an emotional process
Freud assures us that however daring " .
whole
.
.
we
ourselves do not have to
responsibility
Not only that rule
is
for
for
anthropologists
Without the assumption
such
the writer lays
:
of a
continuity in the emotional
life
and
daring
down a
sociologists.
mass psyche, or a of
mankind which
permits us to disregard the interruptions of psychic acts through the transgression of individuals, social
psychology could not exist at of
all.
If
psychic processes
one generation did not continue in the next,
if
each
ANTHROPOLOGY
PSYCHO-ANALYSIS & had
to acquire its attitude towards
would be no progress
in
development "
And
(p. 260).
important point figment of a
this
here
afresh, there
life
field
157
and almost no
we touch on
a very
the methodological necessity of the
:
collective
As a point
soul.
of
fact
no competent anthropologist now makes any such assumption of " mass psyche
", of
the inheritance of
acquired " psychic dispositions ", or of
any " psychic
continuity" transcending the limits of the individual soul.^
On
indicate
the other hand anthropologists can clearly
what the medium
which the experiences
in
is
and stored up
of each generation are deposited
successive generations.
processes which
we
It
is
moulds him
It
is
thus ^
man add
in
turn.
that
is
It is super-individual
moulded by man and the
only
medium
in
can express any creative impulse and his
share
to
the
common
All the anthropological authorities, for instance,
Freud bases
body
and stereotyped mental
call culture.
but not psychological.
which
medium
This
of material objects, traditions,
for
stock upon
of
whom
Lang, Crawley, Marett, never once in their analysis of custom, belief, and institution have employed such or a similar concept. Frazer above all rules this conception consciously and methodically out of his work (personal communication). Durkheim, who verges upon this metaphysical fallacy, has been criticized on this point by most modem anthropologists. Leading sociologists such as Hobhouse, Westermarck, Dewey, and social anthropologists such as Lowie, Kroeber, Boas, have consistently avoided the introduction of " the collective sensorium ". For a searching and destructive criticism of certain attempts at a sociological use of " mass psyche " compare M. Ginsberg, " The Psychology of Society " (1921). his work,
'
SEX AND REPRESSION
158
human
values.
It is
the only reservoir from which
can draw when he wants to
the
individual
the
experiences of others for his personal benefit.
A
fuller analysis of culture to
which we
shall presently
by which
pass will reveal to us the mechanism
and transmitted.
created, maintained,
it
is
This analysis
show us that the complex
also
will
utilize
the natural
is
by-product of the coming into existence of culture.
be obvious to any reader of Dr. Jones's
will
It
article that
he fully adopts Freud's hypothesis about
human
the origins of
previously quoted
complex
it is
clear that to
the passages
him the (Edipus Hence
it
must
Dr. Jones even
more
the origin of everything.
is
be a pre-cultural formation. explicitly
From
civilization.
commits himself to Freud's theory
following passages
" :
Far from being led by considera-
tion of the subject, as Malinowski was, to
Freud's
revise
(Atkinson's
'
in the
conception
cyclopean
of
family
the
'
primal
it
'),
abandon or horde
seems to
me,
on the contrary, that this conception furnishes the
most
explanation
satisfactory
of
the
problems which we have been discussing " Jones also of
the
is
original
" inheritance
horde "
in full
of
(p. 121).
agreement with the
crime,
for
impulses
he
dating
complicated (p. 130).
racial
speaks
Dr.
memory
about
the
from the primal
V
THE ORIGINAL PARRICIDE ANALYZED T ET
now
us examine
of
by point the hypotheses
point
The hypothesis
Freud and Jones.
of the
"primeval horde "has
in itself nothing objectionable
to the anthropologist.
We know that
human and pre-human
of
the earliest form
kinship was
the
family
based on marriage with one or more females. accepting the Darwinian view analysis has
of
kinship,
discarded the hypotheses of primitive
communism,
promiscuity, group marriage and sexual
and
in
this
In
psycho-
it
has the
full
support
But as we have
anthropologists.
competent
of
Darwin made
seen,
no exphcit distinction between the animal and the
human
status,
and Freud
in
his reconstruction
of
Darwin's argument obliterated whatever distinction was implied in the great naturalist's account.
We have
to
enquire therefore into the constitution of the family at the anthropoid
ment.
bonds
We
end
of the
human
animal and
What
are the
before it
became
have to ask the question
of union within the family,
human and
level of develop-
after
?
human
What kinship
is ;
:
the difference between
between the anthropoid
family in the state of nature and the earliest type of
human
family under conditions of culture
?
The pre-human anthropoid family was united by 159
SEX AND REPRESSION
i6o
modified by individual
instinctive or innate bonds,
experience but not influenced by tradition, for animals
have no language, no laws, no of nature the
In the state
institutions.
male and female mate, driven by the
selective sexual impulse operating at the time of rut
and
common
of
After the impregnation of
at that time only.
the female, a
new impulse
life,
leads to the establishment
the male acting as protector and
With the
guarding over the process of pregnancy.
act of birth, the maternal impulses of suckling, tending,
and caring
for the offspring
appear
new
while the male responds to the
providing food, keeping watch, and in
dangerous combats
in the
if
the female,
in
situation
by
need be engaging
defence of the family.
Considering the protracted growth and slow ripening of the individual
among
the anthropoid apes,
it
is
indispensable for the species that parental love should arise in
both male and female and
after birth until the after himself.
new
As soon
last for
individual
as he
is
is
some time
ready to look
mature there
biological need to keep the family together. shall see, this
need
of co-operation the
united the
;
new soon
members
where
of the family
no
As we
for the sake
must remain
while for the sake of handing on tradition
generation must remain in contact with the
previous one. as
arises in culture,
is
as
But the
in the
pre-human Cyclopean family
male or female children became
independent they would naturally leave the horde.
PSYCHO-ANALYSIS & ANTHROPOLOGY This
what we
is
find empirically in every simian
This subserves the interests of the species
species.
and
has therefore to be
It also tallies
with
assumed on general
all
which we can
general knowledge of animal instincts. in
i6i
principles.
from our
infer
We
find also
most higher mammals that the old male leaves
the herd as soon as he
makes room
is
past
we
and more
is
service-
in
animals
and an old leader
liable to create conflict.
that the working
see
This
man temper
does not improve with age,
this
vigour and thus
younger guardian.
for a
able for a species, for as with
less useful
full
room
condition of nature leaves no tions, inner conflicts,
of
instincts
In in
is
all
the
for special complica-
suspended emotions or tragical
events.
Family
life
in
the highest animal species
is
thus
cemented and governed by innate emotional attitudes.
Where
the biological need arises there also appear
When
the appropriate mental responses. ceases
emotional
the
the need
disappears.
attitude
If
we
define instinct as a pattern of behaviour in direct
response to a situation, a response accompanied by pleasurable feelings
family
life is
courtship, infants
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; then
can say that animal
determined by a chain of linked instincts
mating,
common
and mutual help
links follows the other, it is
we
life,
tenderness towards
of the parents.
releasing
:
it
Each
of these
completely, for
characteristic of such concatenations of instinctive
SEX AND REPRESSION
i62
responses that each
new
new type
situation requires a
of behaviour
and a new emotional
logically
very important to realize that each new
it is
Psycho-
attitude.
response replaces and obliterates the old emotional attitude
that no traces of the previous emotion
;
are carried over into the
by a new
instinct the animal
previous
a
of
new
one.
ambivalent emotion
While governed
one.
is
no more
Remorse,
mental
The working
the unrolling of instinctive sequences,
it
is
human,
of instincts,
may
accompanied by more or
less successful,
conflict,
—these are cultural, that
and not animal responses.
but
in the throes
be more or
less friction,
does not leave any room for " endopsychic
tragedies ".
What
is
the importance of
respect to the
all this in
hypothesis of primeval crime
?
I
have pointed out
repeatedly that the Great Tragedy has been placed
by Freud
the
at
multiplied
Freud and Jones
—
it
its
Putting aside the several direct quota-
inaugural act. tions from
threshold of culture and as
is
—and these could be easily
important to realize that this
assumption indispensable to their theories
is
an
all their
:
we do not make culture To the psychobegin with the Totemic Parricide. analyst the (Edipus complex is, as we know, the
hypotheses would collapse
foundation of
not
only
phenomena
all culture.
that
but
the also
if
This must
complex that
it
mean
governs
all
preceded
to
them
cultural
them
all
PSYCHO-ANALYSIS & ANTHROPOLOGY The complex
temporarily.
is
the fons
et
origo out of
which there has grown the totemic order, the elements of law, the beginnings of
163
first
the institution
ritual,
which to the general
of mother-right, everything in fact
anthropologist and to the psycho-analyst counts as
the
my
moreover, to
Jones objects,
Dr.
elements of culture.
first
attempt at tracing any cultural
causes of the (Edipus complex just because this complex
antedates
all culture.
complex has preceded
But all
it
obvious that
is
if
the
cultural phenomena, then
a fortiori the totemic crime, which the complex, must be placed
is
the cause of
further back.
still
After having thus established that the event must
have happened before culture, we are faced with the other alternative of our dilemma
could that totemic
:
crime have happened in the state of nature it
have
left
traces in tradition
and
ex hypothesi did not exist at that time
above,
we would have
and become Man.
Or
culture, ?
Could
which
As indicated
assume that by one act
to
of collective parricide the
?
Ape had
again, that
attained culture
by the same
act
they acquired the so-called racial memory, a new super-animal endowment.
Let us analyze this family
life
of
now
in
detail.
In the
a pre-human anthropoid species each
link in the chain of instincts it
more
ceases to be serviceable.
is
released as soon as
Past instinctive attitudes
leave no active traces, and neither conflict nor complex
SEX AND REPRESSION
i64
These assertions should,
attitudes are possible.
submit, be further tested
psychology, but they
the subject.
If this
by
embody
the student of animal all
that
we know about
be so, however, we have to challenge
Why
the premises of Freud's Cyclopean h5^otheses. the father have to expel the sons
should
I
if
they
naturally and instinctively are inclined to leave the
the family as soon as they have no more need of
parental protection
Why
?
should they lack females,
from other groups, as well as from their own, adult
if
come out
children of the other sex have also to
Why
the parental horde,
and
?
should the young males remain hanging around
why
desire his death
should they hate the father
As we know they
?
are glad to
be free and they have no wish to return to the parental
Why
horde.
should they finally even attempt or
accomplish the cumbersome and unpleasant act of killing the old male, while
by merely waiting
for his
retirement they might gain a free access to the horde
should they so desire
Each
?
of these questions challenges
one of the un-
warranted assumptions implied in Freud's h5^othesis.
Freud
in fact
number
burdens his Cyclopean family with a
of tendencies, habits,
and mental attitudes
which would constitute a lethal endowment for any animal species.
on
biological
It is clear that
grounds.
such a view
We
cannot
is
untenable
assume
the
existence in the state of nature of an anthropoid
PSYCHO-ANALYSIS & ANTHROPOLOGY species
which the most important business of
in
propagation hostile
165
is
regulated
by a system
every interest
to
of
the
of
instincts
species.
It
is
easy to perceive that the primeval horde has been
equipped with
the bias, maladjustments and
all
ill-
tempers of a middle-class European family, and then let loose in
a prehistoric jungle to run
a most
riot in
attractive but fantastic hypothesis.
Let us 5aeld, however, to the temptation of Freud's inspiring speculations
and admit
for the sake of the
argument that the primeval crime had been committed.
Even then we
are faced
by insurmountable
in accepting the consequences.
difficulties
As we saw, we are
asked to beUeve that the totemic crime produces remorse which cannibalistic of
is
expressed in the sacrament of endo-
totemic feast, and
the
in
This impUes that
sexual taboo.
sons had a conscience.
But conscience
also
impUes that they had the
legislating,
of
establishing
moral
ceremonies and social bonds.
All of
a most
is
man by
unnatural mental trait imposed upon It
institution
the parricidal
culture.
possibilities
values,
of
religious
which again
it is
impossible to assume or imagine, for the simple reason
that
hypothesi
the
events
pre-cultural milieu,
and
culture,
ex
cannot be created
in
are
happening
in
we must remember,
one moment and by one
act.
The actual transition from the state of nature into that of culture
was not done by one
leap, it
was not a rapid
SEX AND REPRESSION
i66
We
process, certainly not a sharp transition.
to imagine the early developments of the
first
have
elements
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;speech, tradition, material inventions, conceptual thought â&#x20AC;&#x201D; as a very laborious and very slow of
culture
manner by
process achieved in a cumulative
many,
infinitely small steps integrated
This process
stretches of time.
we
reconstruct in detail, but factors of the change,
early
human
culture
infinitely
over enormous
we cannot
try to
can state the relevant
we can analyze
the situation of
and indicate within certain
limits
the mechanism
by which it came about. To sum up our critical analysis we have found that :
the totemic crime must have been placed at the very origins of culture of culture
that
if it is
we have
to
as happening
that
;
to
it
must be made the
have any sense at
assume the crime and
still
cause
This means
all.
its
first
consequences
in the state of nature,
but such an
assumption involves us in a number of contradictions.
We
find that there
is
in reality a
complete absence
of motive for a parricidal crime, since the working of instincts
is
situation
;
animal conditions well adjusted to the
in
since
mental states
;
it
leads to conflicts but not to repressed
since concretely the sons
for hefting their father after
In the second place
nature there
is
we have
they have
have no reason left
seen that in the state of
also a complete absence of
by which the consequences
the horde.
any means
of the totemic crime could
have been fixed into the cultural
institutions.
There
ANTHROPOLOGY
PSYCHO-ANALYSIS &
medium
a complete absence of any cultural
is
which
ritual,
and
laws,
morals
167 in
have been
could
embodied.
Both objections could be summarized that
it
is
impossible to assume
as one creative act
in the verdict
origins
of culture
culture, fully armed,
by which
springs into being out of one crime, cataclysm or rebellion.
In our criticism
what
on
objection
we have concentrated our
appears
be
to
fundamental
most
hypothesis,
Freud's
to
the
attention
an
objection
connected with the very nature of culture and of Several other objections of detail
cultural process.
could be registered against this hypothesis but they
have been already
forth in an excellent article
set
which the anthropological
of Professor Kroeber's in
as well as the psycho-analytical inconsistencies of the
hypothesis are lucidly and convincingly
There
is,
listed.^
however, one more capital difficulty in which
psycho-analysis involves
totemic origins.
complex and
If
itself
by
its
speculations on
the real cause of the CEdipus
of culture
into
the bargain
is
to
be
sought in that traumatic act of birth by parricide
;
" race memory if the complex merely survived in the then the complex ought obviously of mankind "
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
to wear out with time. ^
"
On
Freud's theory the CEdipus
Totem and Taboo, an Ethnologic Psychoanalysis," American
Anthropologist, 1920, pp. 48 seqq.
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; SEX AND REPRESSION
i68
complex should have been a dreadful a haunting memory it
reality at first,
but in the highest culture
later,
should tend to disappear. This corrollary seems inescapable, but there
need of driving it
a
to
him
full
and
it
home
is
no
Jones gives
dialectically, for Dr.
According
lucid expression in his article.
patriarchy, the social organization of the highest
cultures,
marks indeed the happy solution
difficulties
of all the
due to the primeval crime.
" The patriarchal system, as
we know
it,
betokens
acknowledging the supremacy of the father and yet the ability to accept this even with affection, without
having recourse to a system either of mother-right or of complicated taboos.
gradual
the
At
last
him.
man
It
assimilation
means the taming
man,
complex.
(Edipus
the
of
of
could face his real father and live with
Well might Freud say that the recognition of
the father's place in the family signified the most
important progress in cultural development."
Thus Dr. Jones, and on
^
his authority
Freud himself,
has drawn the inevitable consequence.
They admit
that within their scheme patriarchal culture
most distant from the is
also the one
original course of the
complex
where the gradual assimilation of the
" (Edipus complex " has been achieved. perfectly well into the scheme of Totem
But how does
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;the one
it ^
fit
into
Jones, loc
the
cit.,
general
p. 130.
This
fits
and Taboo. scheme of
ANTHROPOLOGY
PSYCHO-ANALYSIS &
and how does
psycho-analysis
anthropology
As
to the
bear the hght
it
of
?
first
was not the existence
question,
discovered in one of our
complex
(Edipus
169
patriarchal societies
Is this
?
of the
modem
complex not day by day
being re-discovered in the countless individual psychoanalyses carried on
world
A
?
all
over the
modem
patriarchal
psycho-analyst should no doubt be the last
The (Edipus
to answer these questions in the negative.
complex does not seem to have been so well " assimilated " after
Even
all.
be admitted that a great
if it
deal of exaggeration exists in psycho-analytic findings
we have
ordinary sociological observation to vindicate
the claim of psycho-analysis on this point.
psycho-analyst cannot have try to cure most
ills
by dragging
it
both ways.
of the individual
But the
He
cannot
mind and
of
their family
maladjustments out
of the sub-conscious, while at the
same time he cheer-
society
fully assures us that " the is fully
acknowledged
accepted
in
supremacy
our society " and that
" even with affection ".
patriarchal
institutions
of the father
Indeed, extreme
which patria
in
it is
potestas
is
carried to its bitter end are the very soil for typical
The psycho-analysts have
family maladjustments.
been busy proving that to us from Shakespeare and the
Bible,
mythology. of the
Roman
from
Did
complex
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
if
not
history
the
very
and from Greek eponjmious
hero
such an extension of the term be
SEX AND REPRESSION
170 allowed
—
And was and
a society pronouncedly patriarchal
live in
?
not his tragedy based on the father's jealousy
superstitious fear
typically sociological
—motives which, by the way, are ?
Could the myth or the tragedy
unfold before us with the same powerful and fatal effect,
we
unless
patriarchal destiny
Most modem
myths
of
moved by a
puppets
the
felt ?
neuroses, the dreams of patients, the
Indo-Germanic peoples, our literatures and
our patriarchal creeds have been interpreted
complex
of the CEpidus
that in
—
terms
in
under the assumption
i.e.
pronounced father-right the son never recognizes
" the father's place in the family "; that he does not like to " face his real father "; that
" live with
" in peace.
him
he
unable to
is
Surely psycho-analysis
as theory and as practice stands and
with the
falls
modem
truth
of
suffers
from the maladjustments covered by the term
contention
the
that
our
culture
(Edipus complex.
What has anthropology view expressed
in
to say about the optimistic
the passage quoted above
If
?
the patriarchal regime means the happy solution of the (Edipus complex, the stage his father,
complex
and
so
exist in
" deflected " in the first
on
—then
when man could
where on earth does the
an unassimilated form
That
?
under mother-right has been
two parts of
face
this
book and
independently re-vindicated by Dr.
it
it
is
proved
has been
Jones himself.
PSYCHO-ANALYSIS & ANTHROPOLOGY Whether the CEdipus complex
in its full splendour does
exist in a culture never studied empirically
point of view
is
an
171
from
The object
idle question.
this
of the
present work has been partly to stimulate field workers
What
to further research.
might or might not reveal tell.
But
cover
it
and
it
seems to
I for
one
shall
not try to fore-
that to deny the problem, to
up with an obviously inadequate assumption,
much
to obliterate as
towards
me
such an empirical study
as has been already done
not to render a service either
its solution, is
to anthropology or to psycho-analysis. I
have pointed out a
obscurities
in the
series of contradictions
and
psycho-analytic approach to this
question, taking Dr. Jones's interesting contribution
as
my
of
a
main
Such inconsistencies are
text.
" repressed
complex "
the
;
:
the idea
assertion
that
mother-right and ignorance of paternity are correlated
and yet independent
a happy solution
is
well as its cause.
my
opinion
complex
is
round the
of
the view that patriarchy
;
(Edipus
the
complex as
All these discrepancies centre in
the
vera
doctrine
causa
of
that
social
the (Edipus
and
cultural
phenomena instead of being the result that it originated ;
in the primeval crime
memory I
;
that
it
continued in racial
as a system of inherited, collective tendencies.
would
like to indicate just
as a real historical fact, that
one more point. is
Taken
one which has to be
placed in space and time and concrete circumstance,
SEX AND REPRESSION
172
how we
is
to
the primitive parricide to be imagined
assume that once upon a time, in one super-
horde, at one spot, one crime
That
had been committed
this crime then created culture
culture spread
all
assumption
falls
alternative
and that
?
this
over the world by primeval diffusion,
changing apes into
The
Have
?
men wherever
to the is
it
reached
This
?
ground as soon as formulated.
equally difficult to imagine
:
it
a sort of epidemic of minor parricides occurring over the world, each horde going on with
its
is
all
Cyclopean
tyranny and then breaking into crime and thus into culture.
The more we look at the hypothesis concretely,
the more
we
try to elaborate
inclined to treat
it
it,
by Freud
we
feel
as anything but a " Just-so story ",
as Professor Kroeber has called
resented
the less do
it,
an appellation not
himself.^
* Compare Freud's Group Psychology and the Analysis of the Ego, Sign. Freud, 1922, p. 90. The name of Professor Kroeber is misspelled into " Kroeger " right through all the successive editions. One might inquire what is the psycho-analytic cause of this lapse on the principle developed in The Psych '^pathology of Everyday Life, It is almost unpardonable that no mistake is without its motive. that this misprint of the name of a leading American scholar has
been carried over into the American translation of Freud's book
!
VI
COMPLEX OR SENTIMENT? T HAVE, up denote
the
of the family.
expression,
I
complex " to
towards members
attitudes
typical
"
word
to now, used the
have even retrimmed
into a
it
new
the Nuclear Family Complex, which
is
intended to be a generalization, applicable to various
term CEdipus complex, whose applica-
cultures, of the bility, I
maintain,
restricted to the Aryan, patriarchal
But, in the interests of scientific nomenclature,
society. I shall
is
have to
sacrifice this
Family Complex, introduce
new
terms, but
it is
can be proved that
it
one already established.
I
it
" complex "
carries
which make
it
wort.
At the
mean by
with
least
advisable never to
always a laudable act
is
intruder,
jumping the claim
believe
the
that
unsuitable,
except
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;what the Germans we must make
of
word
implications
certain
it
altogether
scientific colloquialism
it
any terminological
to expurgate science of if
new compound, Nuclear
for not only is
call
clear
as
a
Schlag-
what we
it.
The word " complex " dates from a of psycho-analysis
when
this
tion with therapy,
when
it
was
was
still
in close associa-
in fact not
than a method of treating neurosis. 173
certain phase
"
much more Complex
"
SEX AND REPRESSION
174
meant the pathogenous, repressed emotional attitude
But
of the patient.
whether
in
it
has
now become
questionable
general psychology one can sever and isolate
the repressed part of a man's attitude towards a person,
and
elements.
treat
separately from the non-repressed
it
In our study,
emotions which
we have found
constitute
the
that the various
attitude
towards a-
person are so closely connected and intertwined that
they form a closely knit organic insoluble system. Thus, in relation to the father, the feelings which
up veneration and up with the reflections.
idealization are essentially
dislike,
make
bound
hatred or scorn which are their
These negative feelings are
in fact partly
reactions to an over-strained exaltation of the father,
shadows cast into the unconscious by the too glaring idealization
of
the non-ideal father.
shadow from the part which and that which
is
is
unconscious
in the
sever the "
is
impossible;
The psycho-analyst
they are indissolubly connected. in his consultation
To
in the " foreconscious
room can perhaps
neglect the open,
obvious elements of the attitude which contribute
nothing further to the malady repressed oijes and
a complex. patients
make
of
;
he can
them an
isolate the
entity, calling
it
But as soon as he leaves his neurotic
and enters the
lecture
room with a general
psychological theory, he might as well realize that
complexes do not
exist,
that certainly they do not lead
an independent existence
in the
unconscious and that
ANTHROPOLOGY
PSYCHO-ANALYSIS &
175
they are only part of an organic whole, of which the essential constituents are not repressed at
As a
am
sociologist I
all.
not here concerned with the
pathological results, but with their normal, ordinary
And, although
foundations.
this theoretical analysis
stantiate
it
by
conscious "
as
I
was
better to leave
now, when we can sub-
yet throughout our account of
fact,
family influences,
till
it
have as
well
clearly indicated the " fore-
unconscious
the
elements.
shown
Psycho-analysis has the great merit of having
that the typical sentiments towards father and mother include negative as well as positive elements
that
;
they have a repressed portion, as well as one above the surface of consciousness.
But
this
must not make us
forget that both portions are equally important.
Since
we
see
that the conception of an isolated
repressed attitude
is
useless in sociology,
to gain a clear vision of
how we can
we must generalize
and with what psychological doctrines we should
up our conception
of
try
what we had hitherto
it
link
called
" nuclear family complex ", and which includes besides " unconscious " also overt elements. clearly
that
certain
new
I
have indicated
tendencies
of
modern
psychology have a special affinity to psycho-analysis. I
meant, of course, the very important advance of
knowledge about our emotional
life,
inaugurated by
Mr. A. F. Shand in his theory
of
sentiments and
developed later by Stout, Westermarck, McDougall,
SEX AND REPRESSION
176
and a few
Mr. Shand was the
others.
first
to reahze
that emotiorts cannot be treated as loose elements,
unconnected and unorganized, floating
medium
make now and then an
to
the newer work on emotions,
by
enunciated
emotional
our
claim
that a
;
emotional
:
.
namely,
co-ordinated
number
all
based on the principle
is
himself
definitely
is
life
environment
and
isolated
His theory, as well as
accidental appearance.
first
our mental
in
that
our
with
the
and persons
of things
Round
responses.
each
person or object the emotions are organized into a
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;the
definite
system
feel for
a parent, a country or a life-pursuit.
or hate
love
a system of organized emotions Mr. Shand
The
sentiment.
members
ties
sentiments.
devotion
And
the
first
short essays which
and which
later
calls
a
life
to
ideals of truth,
science
of every
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
man
all
is
a limited number of these sentiments. sentiments was
Such
which bind us to the various
of our family, patriotism,
righteousness,
we
devotion
or
outlined
these
are
dominated by
The theory
of
by Mr. Shand in one or two
must be regarded
as epoch-making,
were expanded into a large volume.^
In his book, Mr. Shand assumes an innate predisposition for a
few systems such as love and hate, into each of
which there enter a number of emotions. emotion again
is
to Mr.
Every
Shand a complex type
* " Character and the Emotions ", in Mind, new The Foundations of Character, 1st edn., 1917.
series, vol.
i,
of and
PSYCHO-ANALYSIS & ANTHROPOLOGY
177
mental response to a definite type of situation, so that every emotion has at
will
command
a
number
of
Mr. Shand's theory of senti-
instinctive reactions.
ments
its
always remain of paramount importance
for the sociologist, since social
bonds as well as cultural
values are sentiments standardized under the influence of tradition
as
it
and
In the study of family
culture.
develops in two different civilizations,
given a concrete application of the Shandian
life,
we have
principles,
the theory of sentiments with reference to a definite social problem.
We have
seen
how
the child's attitude
towards the most important items in his environment gradually formed, and
which contribute towards
its
formation.
The
correction
and addition which psycho-analysis has allowed us
make
is
we have examined the influences
to Mr. Shand's theory
is
to
the consideration of the
repressed elements of a sentiment.
But these repressed
elements cannot be isolated into a water-tight conpartment, and they cannot as a " complex " be regarded as something different " sentiment
to which
".
We
and distinguishable from the
see,
therefore,
that the theory
we must attach our results in order to put them
on a sound theoretical basis
is
Shand's theory of the
sentiments, and that instead of speaking of a " nuclear
complex " we should have to speak sentiments, of kinship
The sister
ties,
of
the family
typical of a given society.
attitudes or sentiments towards father, mother,
and brother do not grow up
isolated,
detached
SEX AND REPRESSION
178
from one another.
The
organic,
indissoluble unity
of the family welds also the psychological sentiments
towards is
its
members
shown very
into one connected system.
clearly
by our
expression " nuclear family
Thus the
results.
complex "
This
is
equivalent
to the conception of a correlated system of sentiments, or, shortly, of
a configuration of sentiments, typical
in a patriarchal or a matriarchal society.
PART
IV
AND CULTURE
INSTINCT
I
THE TRANSITION FROM NATURE TO CULTURE
TN
the foregoing part of this book, in which
we have
been mainly concerned with the discussion of certain psycho-analytic views, our results
mainly
critical
:
we have
tried to establish the principle
that in a pre-cultural condition there in
which
and
social institutions, morals,
be moulded
;
that there
have been
is
is
no medium
religion could
no memory mechanism by
which to maintain and to transmit the institutions after they is
have been established. The position reached
perhaps unassailable to those
who
really under-
stand the crucial fact that culture cannot be created
by one
act or in one
moment and
that institutions,
morals, and religion could not be conjured up, even
by the
greatest cataclysm,
among animals who have
not yet emerged from the state of nature. But naturally
we
are not satisfied merely with
want to
affirm.
mistakes, but process. relation
To
We
do not merely wish to point out
we want this
denying but also
end
to throw light on the actual
we have
to
analyze
between cultural and natural processes. 179
the
;
SEX AND REPRESSION
i8o
The
type
essentially
behaviour
of
of
culture
differs
from animal behaviour in the state of nature.
Man, however simple outfit
under
his culture, disposes of a material
weapons,
implements,
he moves within a
and controls him
social milieu
in turn
which gives him help
he communicates by speech
;
and thus develops concepts
of a rational religious
Thus man disposes
magical character.
material possessions,
of a
and
body
of
within a type of social
lives
organization, communicates
by systems
domestic chattels
by language, and
of spiritual values.
is
moved
These are perhaps the
four main headings under which
we
usually classify
the body of man's cultural achievements. Thus culture
appears to us when we meet
And
plished.
that is it
let
it
as a fact already accom-
us clearly and explicitly recognize
we never can observe
it
in statu nascendi.
Nor
at all profitable to manufacture hypotheses about
the " original events of cultural birth
we do then
human
in trying to reflect
culture, that
is
What can
upon the beginnings
we want
if
".
to do
it
of
without
having recourse to any extravagant hypotheses or unwarrantable assumptions
?
There
is
one important
thing to do, namely, to indicate what part various factors of cultural
process of
;
development have played
what they imply
man's
endowment,
in the
in psychological modification
and
in
what
way
non-
psychological elements can influence this endowment.
For the factors
of cultural
development are intertwined
INSTINCT and
essentially
AND CULTURE
i8i
dependent upon each other, and while
we have no knowledge and no
indications
sequences in development, while in
all
about
speculations
about beginnings the element of time entirely escapes our intellectual control, we can yet study the correlations of the factors
We
and thus gain a great deal
have to study these correlations
of information. in full cultural
development, but we can trace them back into more and
more primitive forms. scheme
of dependence,
appear in
all
cultural
any hypothesis which considered void.
If if
we thus
phenomena, we can say that violates these laws
More than
this
cultural process disclose to us the of certain factors,
have
also
arrive at a fixed
certain lines of correlation
:
if
must be
the laws of
all
paramount influence
we must assume
that these factors
been controlling the origins of culture.
this sense the concept of origins does not
In
imply priority
time or causal effectiveness, but merely indicates
in
the universal presence of certain active factors at all
stages of development, hence also at the beginning.
Let us start with the recognition that the main categories of culture
must from the very outset have
been intertwined and simultaneously at work.
They
could not have originated one after the other, and they
cannot be placed in any scheme of temporal sequence. Material culture, for instance, could not have
being before
man was
come
into
able to use his implements in
traditional technique which, as
we know,
implies the
SEX AND REPRESSION
i82
existence of knowledge.
thought
conceptual
without
impossible
are
Knowledge again and tradition
and
language. Language, thought, and material culture are
thus correlated, and must have been so at any stage of development, hence also at the beginnings of culture.
The material arrangements
of living, again, such as
housing, household implements, daily social
life,
means
are essential correlates
of carrying
on
and prerequisites
of
The hearth and the threshold
organization.
not only symbolically stand for family
life,
but are
real social factors in the formation of kinship bonds.
Morals, again, constitute a force without which
man
could not battle against his impulses or even go beyond his
endowment, and that he has to do
instinctive
constantly under culture even in his simplest technical activities.
It is
the changes in instinctive
which interest us most
endowment
in this context, for here
we touch
the question of repressed drives, of modified impulsive tendencies, that I
shall try to
the
instincts
fantastic
for the (Edipus
".
show that the neglect to study what
happens to human for
the domain of the " unconscious
is,
under culture
hypothesis
complex.
It will
is
responsible
advanced to account be
my aim to show that
the beginning of culture implies the repression of instincts,
and that
complex or any
all
the essentials of the (Edipus
other " complex " are necessary by-
products in the process of the gradual formation of culture.
AND CULTURE
INSTINCT To
human there
end
this
I shall
try to
show that between the
parent and child under conditions of culture
must
arise incestuous temptations
likely to occur in instincts.
which are not
animal families governed by true
I shall also
estabhsh that these temptations
have to be met and ruthlessly repressed since incest
Again,
183
and organized family
culture
implies
life
in
mankind,
are incompatible.
an education which cannot
be carried on without coercive authority. authority in family
by the
and son
human father,
society
is
This
supplied within the
and the attitude between father
gives rise to suppressed hatred
elements of the complex.
and other
II
THE FAMILY AS THE CRADLE OF NASCENT CULTURE
npHE
fundamental change
in
the mechanism
instinctive responses has to be studied
subject matter of our present inquiry of family
human all
life
:
of
upon the very
the early forms
and the transition between animal and
family.
Upon
the
human
family are focussed
psycho-analytic interests and the family
is,
in the
opinion of an anthropological school to which the writer belongs, the societies.!
The
most important group
following
in primitive
comparison of courtship,
mating, matrimonial relations and parental cares in ^
It is clear that in this statement, as
throughout the book,
I
imply
human family is based on monogamous The wide prevalence of monogamy in all human societies
that the tj^ical form of the marriage. is
also
assumed by Dr. Lowie
in his Primitive Society (see especially
A
very interesting and important contribution to the problem is to be found in Capt. Pitt-Rivers's Contact of Races and Clash of Culture, 1927 (see especially chapters viii, sees. 1, 2, 3, and xi, sec. 1). Capt. Pitt- Rivers urges the biological and sociological importance of polygyny at the lower levels of culture. Without fully accepting his view, I admit that the problem will have to be rediscussed from the point of view advanced by him. I still maintain, however, that the importance of polygyny is to be found in the role which it plays in differentiating the higher from the lower classes in a society the plurality of wives allows a chief to obtain economic and political advantages and thus provides a chapter
iii).
;
basis for distinctions of rank.
184
INSTINCT AND CULTURE animal and in
human
185
show
societies respectively, will
what sense the family must be considered as the the
as
society,
of
starting
point
of
cell
human
all
organization.
There
is
one point which must be settled before
Very
can conveniently proceed with our argument. often
we
assumed by anthropologists that humanity
it is
developed from a gregarious simian species and that
man
inherited from his animal ancestors the so-called
Now
" herd instincts ".
this hypothesis
incompatible with the view here taken that
by extension
sociability develops
and from no other
sources. Until
;
until
common
of the family
bonds
has been shown that
it
the assumption of pre-cultural gregariousness
unfounded
entirely
is
is
entirely
a radical difference in nature
shown between human
sociability,
which
is
a cultural
achievement, and animal gregariousness, which innate endowment,
it
is
futile
to
is
show how
is
an
social
organization develops out of early kinship groups.
Instead of having to face the " herd instinct " at every
turn of our argument and show
and
there,
it is
its
inadequacy then
best to deal with this mistaken point of
view from the outset. It
idle,
is
logical
I
believe,
question
lived in
big
to consider the purely
zoo-
whether our pre-human ancestors
herds
and
were
endowed with the
necessary innate tendencies which allow animals to cb-operate in herds, or whether they lived in single
SEX AND REPRESSION
i86
The question we have
families.
any forms
human
of
to answer
is
whether
organization can be derived from
any animal types of herding
;
that
is
whether organized
behaviour can be traced back to any forms of animal " gregariousness or " herd-instinct
Let us
consider animal gregariousness.
first
fact that a
number
of animal species are so constituted
that they have to lead their
life in
by
more or less numerous
main problems
groups, and that they solve the existence
It is a
of their
Can we say
innate forms of co-operation.
with regard to such animal species that they possess a specific
herd
'
definitions
fixed
of
pattern
anatomical
and
'
gregarious
'
behaviour,
instinct
?
a
general specific
All
competent
must mean a
it
with
associated
mechanisms correlated to
The various
carry on
'
agree that
instinct
of
showing
species.
or
certain
organic
needs
throughout
uniformity
the
methods by which animals
the process of search for food, of nutrition
;
the series of instincts which constitute mating, the rearing
and education
of offspring
various locomotive arrangements primitive defensive and constitute instincts. instinct
with
physiological
an
;
;
the working of the
the functioning of
offensive mechanisms,
we can
In each
anatomical
mechanism and a
apparatus,
specific
biological process of individual
and
aim
with
a
in the vast
racial existence.
Throughout the species each individual in
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;these
correlate the
will
behave
an identical manner, provided that the conditions
AND CULTURE
INSTINCT of its
187
organism and the external circumstances are
present to release the instinct.
What about note
we
that
gregariousness
the
find
It
?
of
division
interesting
is
functions,
to
the
co-ordination of activities, and the general integration of collective
life
most pronounced among
forms of animal
life
such as the insects, and
(Compare the writer's
perhaps, coral colonies.
on " Instincts
and
also,
article
Culture " in Niture, July 19, 1924.)
But neither with the
mammals do we
relatively low
social insects
nor with gregarious
a specific anatomical outfit
find
subserving any specific
of
act
" herding ".
The
collective behaviour of animals subserves all processes, it
It
envelops
all instincts,
but
it is
modification of
all instincts
which makes the animals
most
of the species co-operate in
important to note that in of
not a specific instinct.
might be called an innate component, a general
animals
the collective behaviour
all
co-operation
It is
vital affairs.
is
governed
by
innate
adaptations and not by anything which could be called social organization in the sense in
word
to humanity.
in the article
This
I
which we apply
have established more
this fully
mentioned above.
Thus man could not have inherited a gregarious instinct, '
which no animal possesses, but only a diffused
gregariousness
man
'.
This would obviously
mean
that
has a general tendency to carry out certain
adaptations
by
collective
rather
than
individual
SEX AND REPRESSION
i88
behaviour, an assumption which would not help us
much
very
in
any concrete anthropological problem.
Yet even the assumption can
gregariousness
For
erroneous.
out
all
defined
is
be
shown
be
to
there any tendency in
important acts in type
a tendency towards
of
of
common
activity
'
completely
man
any
or even
;
gregariously
'
to carry
?
well-
He
is
capable indeed of developing his powers of co-operation
numbers
indefinitely, of harnessing increasing
But whatever
fellow creatures to one cultural task.
type of activity be considered, carrying on
his
work
demand
the type of culture
man
in isolation it.
if
of his
also capable of
is
the conditions and
In the processes con-
nected with nutrition and the satisfaction of bodily
wants we can find every activity fishing,
by
alone,
food gathering, in
groups or
by individual
collective labour as well as
is
capable of developing collective forms of sexual
competition, of group licence side individual forms of courtship. offspring, in
:
performed either
In carrying out the propagation of the race
effort.
man
agriculture,
human
The
found at least among societies,
by
side with strictly
collective tending of
insects,
has no parallel
where we see individual parenthood
devoted to the care of individual children. while
many
formed
in
Again,
ceremonies of religion and magic are per-
common,
individual initiation
rites, solitary
experiences and personal revelation play as great a
part in religion as do collective forms of worship.
AND CULTURE
INSTINCT There
no more trace of gregarious tendencies
is
domain
189
of the sacred than in
Thus scrutiny
culture.^
any other type
human
of cultural activities
reveal no gregarious tendencies of of fact, the further
of
in the
would
any sort. As a matter
we go back the more the
individual
character predominates, at least in economic work.
never becomes quite solitary, however, and the
It
stage
by
" individual
of
search
certain economists seems to
postulated
food "
for
me
to be a fiction
:
even at low levels organized activities run always side
by
no doubt that
is
field
individual
disappear
and are replaced by
enormous instinct
scale.
from
the
there
individual
economic
collective production
would have then a case
on an of
an
increasing with culture, which, as can be
'
easily seen,
is
a reductio ad ahsurdum
Another way so-called
We
But
effort.
advances
culture
as
gradually
activities
'
with
side
'
of
!
approaching the question of the
herd instinct
'
would be to examine the
nature of the bonds which
unite
men
into
social
groups. These bonds, whether political, legal, linguistic, or customary are one and in fact,
it
all
of
an acquired character
can be easily seen that there
element in them at
all.
Take the bonds
is
;
no innate
of speech
which
unite groups of people at all levels of culture
and
This has been worked out in detail by myself in another and Science " in Science, Religion and Reality, Collected Essays by Various Authors, edited by *
publication, " Magic, Religion
J.
Needham, 1925.
SEX AND REPRESSION
igo sharply it
is
distinguish
them from those with whom
impossible to communicate
Language
is
by word
mouth.
of
an entirely acquired bodily habit.
not based on any innate apparatus,
it
is
It is
completely
dependent upon the culture and the tradition of a tribe, that is
upon elements which vary within the same
and so cannot be
species,
specifically innate.
It is
clear,
moreover, that no " language instinct " could
have
been
who
never
from
inherited
communicated
our
animal
by
a
ancestors,
symbolic
con-
we
take,
ventional code.
Whatever form
we
of organized co-operation
see after a brief scnitiny that
artefacts
it is
based on cultural
and governed by conventional norms.
the economic activities,
man
In
uses tools and proceeds
according to traditional methods.
The
social
bonds
which unite economic co-operative groups are therefore based upon a completely cultural framework. The same refers to
an organization
for purposes of war, of religious
ceremonial, of the enforcement of justice. Nature could
not have endowed
human beings with specific
responses
towards artefacts, traditional codes, symbolic sounds, for the simple reason that
the domain of nature.
aU these objects
The forms and
organization are imposed upon a
by
culture
and not by nature.
lie
outside
forces of social
human community
There cannot be any
innate tendency to run a locomotive or to use a machine
gun, simply because these implements cannot have been
AND CULTURE
INSTINCT anticipated
human In
191
by the natural conditions under which the
species has been biologically fashioned.
man
behaviour
organized
his
all
always
is
governed by those elements which are outside any
endowment.
natural
organization built-up
based upon sentiments, that
and
attitudes
Technically,
with
is
human
innate
not
association
with
artefacts,
material contrivances
tools,
all of
is
complex
tendencies.
always correlated weapons,
which extend beyond man's
Human
always a combination, a dove-tailing of cultural functions.
is
implements,
natural anatomical equipment.
and
human
Psychologically,
It is
sociality is
legal, political,
not a mere identity of
the emotional impulse, not a similarity of response to the same stimulus, but an acquired habit dependent
upon the existence this will
of
become
an
artificial set of conditions.
All
clearer after our subsequent discussion
formation
the
of
of
social
bonds
out
of
innate
tendencies within the family.
To sum behave is
in
up,
we can say
common and
man
that
obviously has to
that his organized behaviour
But while
one of the comer-stones of culture.
collective behaviour in animals
ment, in
Human
man
it is
due to innate equip-
always a gradually built-up habit. with culture, while
sociality increases
been mere gregarious ness
remain constant.
is
The
foundation of culture
it
should decrease
fact
lies
is
in a
that
if it
had
or, at least,
the
essential
deep modification of
SEX AND REPRESSION
192 innate
endowment
in
and are replaced by
which most instincts disappear,
plastic
though directed tendencies
The
which can be moulded into cultural responses. social integration of these responses
an important
is
part of the process, but this integration
is
possible
through the general plasticity of instincts and not through any
We may
specific gregarious
can
organization tendencies, shall
tendency
!
thus conclude that no type of
be
still less
back
traced
to a specific
'
human
gregarious
to
herd instinct
'.
We
be able to show that the necessary correlate of only type of
this principle is that the family is the
grouping which
man
takes over from the animal.
In
the process of transmission, however, this unit changes
fundamentally with regard to stitution,
though
The group
its
tie,
nature and
con-
form remains remarkably unaltered.
of parents
the maternal
its
and
children, the
permanence of
the relation of father to his offspring,
show remarkable analogies throughout human culture and
in the world of higher animals.
But as the family
passes under the control of cultural elements, the instincts
which have exclusively regulated
it
among
pre-human apes become transformed into something which did not
bonds of
exist before
social
man
organization.
:
I
mean
We
the cultural
have now to
enquire into this transformation of instinctive responses into cultural behaviour.
Ill
RUT AND MATING T ET
IN
ANIMAL AND MAN
us compare the chain of linked instinctive
responses which in animals constitute courtship,
human
marriage and family with the corresponding institutions.
Let
point after point, go over each
us,
link in the love-making
and family
apes and ascertain what in
human
life
of anthropoid
beings corresponds
to each.
Among the
apes the courtship begins with a change in
female
factors
organism,
determined by physiological
and automatically
in the male.^
releasing the sexual response
The male then proceeds to court according
to the selective type of wooing which prevails in a
given species. In this
all
the individuals
who
are within
the range of influence take part, because they are
by the condition
irresistibly attracted 1
In this context
I
of the female.
should like to refer the reader to Havelock
ElUs's Studies in the Psychology of Scat (six vols.). In that work the biological nature of the regulation of the sexual instinct under
and the parallel between animal and an important principle of explanation. For an interesting comment upon Darwin's Theory of Sexual Selection, see vol. iii, p. 22 seqq. (1919 ed.). In this volume the reader never lost sight
culture
is
human
societies is used as
of,
a general criticism of the various theories of the sex In volume iv. Sexual Selection in man is discussed volume vi deals with the sociological aspect of the problem.
will also find
impulse.
;
193
o
SEX AND REPRESSION
194
Rut provides opportunities
for display
on the part of
the males and for selection on the part of the female. All the factors
stage are
which define animal behaviour at this
common
to all individuals of the species.
They work with such uniformity that
animal
for each
and only one has to be given by
species one set of data
the zoologist, while, on the other hand, they vary
considerably from one species to another, so that for
new
each species a
description
But
necessary.
is
within the species the variations, whether individual or otherwise, are so small and irrelevant that the zoologist ignores
them and
is
fully justified in
doing
so.
Could an anthropologist provide such a formula
mechanism
for the
human
species
and mating
of courtship
Obviously not.
?
It is sufficient to
open any book referring to the sexual whether
it
be the
classical
in the
life
of
humanity,
works of Havelock
Ellis,
Westermarck, and Frazer or the excellent descriptions in
Crawley's Mystic
Rose,
to
that
find
there
are
innumerable forms of courtship and marriage, that seasons of love-making are different, that types of
wooing and winning vary with each culture. zoologist the species
the unit deals
is
is
the unit, to the anthropologist
the culture.
with
anthropologist
In other words, the zoologist behaviour,
instinctive
specific
with
To the
a
culturally
fashioned
the habit-
response.
Let us examine this in greater
detail.
In the first place
AND CULTURE
INSTINCT we
man there man is ready
see that in
means that and woman as
we
to respond to
nothing in
is
make
to
him
of rut,
love at
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;a
which
any time
condition which,
know, does not simplify human intercourse.
all
There
no season
is
195
man which
acts with the
same sharp
determination as does the onset of ovulation in any
mammalian there in
female.
Does
any human society licentious
we
find,
We know
?
first
have of
that even in the
nothing like
cultures
exists or could ever
culture
mean, however, that
anything approaching indiscriminate mating
is
most
this
existed.
all,
promiscuity
'
'
human
In every
systems of well-defined
taboos which rigidly separate a number of people of opposite
sexes
and
potential partners.
whole
exclude
categories
The most important
of these taboos
completely excludes from mating those people
normally and naturally in contact, that
same
of the
from
number
is,
family, parents from children,
sisters.
As an extension
of
of this,
the
who
are
members
and brothers
we
find in
a
of primitive societies a wider prohibition of
sex intercourse which debars whole groups of people
from any sex
Next
in
relations.
This
is
the law of exogamy.
importance to the taboo of incest
prohibition of adultery. While the
first
is
the
serves to guard
the family, the second serves for the protection of
marriage.
But
culture does not exercise a merely negative
influence
upon the sexual impulse.
In each com-
SEX AND REPRESSION
196
,
munity we amorous
find also interest
inducements to courtship and to the
besides
The various
exclusions.
and
prohibitions
times of
seasons,
festive
dancing and personal display, periods when food lavishly
consumed and stimulants used, are as a
also the signal for erotic pursuits.
numbers
men
men and women
At such seasons
rule
large
congregate and young
are brought in contact with girls from
beyond the
the family and of the local group.
Very often
circle of
some
of
is
of the usual restraints are lifted
girls are
and boys and
allowed to meet unhampered and uncontrolled.
Indeed, such seasons naturally encourage courtship by
means
of the stimulants, the artistic pursuits,
festive
mood.^
Thus
the
signal
for
the process of mating,
is
the
courtship,
given not
and the
release
of
by a mere bodily
change but by a combination of cultural influences. In the last instance these influences obviously act
upon the human body and stimulate innate reactions that
in
they
provide
proximity,
physical
atmosphere, and appropriate suggestions
;
mental
unless the
organism were ready to respond sexually no cultural
make man mate. But, instead of an automatic physiological mechanism, we have a cominfluences could
plicated
arrangement into which
artificial
elements
^ Havelock Ellis has given a wealth of data on the seasonal mating in animal and man in the essay on Sexual Periodicity,
vol.
i
(1910 ed.), especially see pp. 122 seqq.
marck's History of
Human
Marriage, vol.
i,
Compare ch.
ii.
also Wester-
AND CULTURE
INSTINCT
Two
points, therefore,
no purely
biological release
have been largely introduced.
must be noted
mechanism
there
:
is
man, but instead there
in
is
a combined
and formal nature by cultural
in its temporal, spatial,
associated with
;
is
and physiological process determined
psychological
tradition
197
it
and supplementing
it
a system of cultural taboos which limit considerably
the working of the sexual impulse.
Let us inquire
now what
the
is
biological value of
rut for an animal species and what are the consequences
man
for
has to be
selective,
for comparison
and
all
animal species mating
there
must be opportunities
In
of its absence. i.e.
for choice with either sex.
male and female must have a chance to display
Both his or
her charms, to exercise attractions, to compete for the Colour, voice, physical strength, cunning
chosen one.
and
agility in
combat
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;each
vigour and organic perfection
Mating by choice, again,
is
a
symptom
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;determine
of bodily
the choice.
an indispensable counter-
part of natural selection, for without some arrangement for
selective
mating the species would degenerate.
This necessity increases as evolution
;
we ascend the scale of organic
in the lowest animals there is not
need for pairing.
even the
It is clear, therefore, that in the
highest animal, man, the need for selective mating
cannot
have
disappeared.
assumption, that
be
true.
it is
In
fact,
most stringent,
is
the
opposite
more
likely to
SEX AND REPRESSION
igS
Rut, however, supplies the animal not only with the
scribes
and delimits sexual
season the sexual interest
and
petition
interest.
in
is
Outside the rutting
abeyance and the comas
well
as
strife
circum-
It also definitely
opportunities for selection.
overpowering
the
absorption in sex are eliminated from the ordinary life
of
an animal
Considering the great danger
species.
from outside enemies and the disruptive forces within,
which are associated with courtship, the elimination of
the
sex
normal
from
interest
and
times
concentration on a definite short period
its
of great
is
importance for the survival of animal species. In the light of rut in
man
this,
all
really signify
?
what does the absence of
The sexual impulse
confined to any season, not conditioned process,
and as
concerned, of
it is
far as
man and woman.
interests at all times
to
mere physiological
there to affect at any It is ;
work upon and loosen
all
moment
the
all
life
other
tends constantly
existing bonds.
impulse, absorbing and pervading as interfere with all
forces are
ready to upset
left to itself it
not
is
by any bodily
it is,
This
would thus
normal occupations of man, would
destroy any budding form of association, would create
chaos from within and would invite dangers from without.
As we know,
this
is
not a mere phantasy
;
the sex impulse has been the source of most trouble
from
Adam and Eve
tragedies,
onwards.
It is
whether we meet them
the cause of most in
present
day
AND CULTURE
INSTINCT in
actualities,
production.
past history, in
And
myth
199
or in hterary
yet the very fact of conflict shows
that there exist some forces which control the sexual
impulse
it
;
man
proves that
his insatiable appetites
;
does not surrender to
that he creates barriers and
imposes taboos which become as powerful as the very forces of destiny. It
is
important to note that these barriers and
mechanisms which regulate sex under culture are different
from the animal safeguards
With the animal
nature.
instinctive
physiological change throw male situation out of selves
man
in the state of
endowment and
and female
into a
which they have to extricate them-
by the simple play
With
of natural impulses.
we know, from culture and tradition. In each society we find rules which make it impossible for men and women to yield freely to the impulse. How these taboos arise, by what forces they work, we shall see presently. For the moment it is the control comes, as
enough to derive
its
realize clearly that a social
force
from
instinct,
taboo does not
but that instead
has to work against some innate impulse. plainly the difference between
animal at
instinct.
While
any moment, he
imposed check upon is
always
it
In this
we
see
human endowment and
man is ready to respond sexually also
submits to an
this response.
no natural bodily process which
artificially
Again, while there definitely releases
active sexual interest between male
and female,
a
SEX AND REPRESSION
200
number
of inducements towards courtship guide
and
bring out the impulse.
We can now formulate more precisely what we mean by the
plasticity of instincts.
The modes
man
man must mate selectively, mate promiscuously. On the other hand,
only as regards their ends
he cannot
of behaviour
determined in
associated with sex interest are ;
the release of the impulse, the inducement to courtship,
the motives for a definite selection are dictated cultural arrangements.
by
These arrangements have to
follow certain lines parallel to the hnes of natural
endowment
in the animal.
of selection, there ness,
above
There must be an element
must be safeguards
all therfe
for exclusive-
must be taboos which prevent
sex from constantly interfering in ordinary
The
plasticity of instincts in
man
is
life.
defined
by the
absence of physiological changes, of automatic release of a biologically determined cause of courtship.
It is
associated with the effective determination of sexual
behaviour by cultural elements.
Man
is
endowed with
sexual tendencies but these have to be moulded in addition
by systems
of cultural rules
one society to another.
We
shall
which vary from
be able to see with
greater precision in the course of our present inquiry
how
far these
norms can
differ
from each other and
diverge from the fundamental animal pattern.
IV
MARITAL RELATIONS T ET
us follow the universal romance of
And
into its next stage. of marriage into
man and
let
life
and look
us examine the bonds
which lead the two
parallel paths of
animal, of eolithic cave-dweller and of super-
simian ape.
Of what does marriage
animals, especially in apes
really consist in
Mating occurs as the
?
culminating act of courtship and with this the female conceives. its
With impregnation the
rut
is
over and with
end there ceases the sexual attractiveness of the
female to other males. But this
whom
male who has won her,
whom
she has surrendered.
is
not the case with the
she has chosen and to It is difficult to affirm
from the data at our disposal whether nature the higher apes after impregnation.
still
The
in the state of
continue to mate sexually
fact,
however, that the female
ceases to be attractive to other males while her
remains attached to her constitutes
The
animal marriage.
and female to the new
ment
;
the
specific response of
situation
;
their
mate
bond
of
both male
mutual attach-
the tendency of the male to remain with his
consort, to guard her, to assist her,
nourish her
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;these
animal marriage
is
and to protect and
are the innate elements of which
made
up. 201
The new phase
of life
SEX AND REPRESSION
202
new type
therefore consists of a
dominated by a new hnk This new
link
of behaviour
;
it
is
in the chain of instincts.
might appropriately be called the
matrimonial response in contrast to the sexual impulse.
The animal union
based
is
neither
upon the un-
controllable passion of rut nor on the sexual jealousy of the
male nor on any claims
on the part of the male.
It is
of general appropriation
based on a special innate
tendency.
When we
pass to
matrimonial bonds
The
is
human
society
act of sexual union, in the
A
constitute marriage.
sanction
is
the nature of
found to be entirely
special
different.
first place,
does not
form of ceremonial
necessary and this type of social act differs
from the taboos and inducements of which we spoke in the previous chapter.
We have here a special creative
act of culture, a sanction or hallmark which establishes
a new relation between two individuals. This relationship possesses a force derived not from instincts but
from sociological pressure.
The new
over and above the biological bond.
tie is
something
As long
as this
creative act has not been performed, as long as marriage
has not been concluded in a
woman
they
like,
tie,
ment
in
cultural forms, a
man and
can mate and cohabit as long and as often as
and
their
essentially different
Their
its
since there
man,
is
relation
remains
something
from a socially sanctioned marriage. is
no innate matrimonial arrange-
not biologically safeguarded.
Nor
is
AND CULTURE
INSTINCT it,
since society has not established
cultural sanction.
man and
society a
As a matter a
it,
203
enforced by
of fact, in every
woman who attempt
human
behave as
to
they were married without obtaining the appropriate
if
social sanction are
made
to suffer
more or
less severe
penalties.
A new
force, therefore,
a
new
element, comes into
play supplementing the mere instinctive regulation of
animals
And
the actual interference of society.
:
need hardly be added that once
this sanction
it
has been
obtained, once two people have been married, they
not only
may but must
fulfill
the numerous obligations,
physiological, economic, religious,
and domestic which
human relationship. As we have conclusion of a human marriage is not the
are involved in this seen, the
consequence of a mere instinctive drive but of complex
But
cultural inducements. sociologically sealed duties, ties,
by
legal,
societies
and
after
matrimony has been
and hall-marked, a number
reciprocities are imposed,
religious,
and moral sanctions.
of
backed up
human
In
such a relationship can usually be dissolved
and re-entered with another partner but
this process
never easy to carry out, and in some cultures the
is
price of divorce
makes
it
almost prohibitive.
Here we see clearly the difference between instinctive regulation on the one
hand and
on the
in animals
by
other.
While
selective courtship, concluded
cultural determinism
marriage
is
induced
by the mere
act of
SEX AND REPRESSION
204
impregnation, and maintained by the forces of the innate matrimonial attachment, in
by
And
sociological
by the various systems
sanction and maintained social pressure.
induced
it is
by
concluded
elements,
cultural
man
yet here again
it is
not
of
difficult
to perceive that the cultural apparatus works very
much that
in the
same
differs.
more
the
helpless
new-born for
them
In
the
because
necessary
infant
and
same ends though the mechanism
attains the
it
entirely is
direction as natural instincts
higher
the
animals
the pregnant
and
the
longer
more
the
marriage
pregnancy,
female
and the
necessary
is
it
The
to have the protection of the male.
innately determined bond of matrimonial affection
by which the male responds to the pregnancy chosen mate
fulfills
this
of his
need of the species, and
is,
in fact, indispensable for its continuity.
In
man
this
need for an affectionate and interested
protector of pregnancy
still
That the innate
remains.
mechanism has disappeared we know from the
fact
that in most societies on a low as well as on a high level
of
culture
the
male
refuses
to
take
any
responsibility for his offspring unless compelled to
so
by
But each culture develops exist certain
certain
forces
and there
arrangements which play the same part
as the instinctive drives do in an animal species. institution
do
which enforces the contract of marriage.
society,
of
marriage in
its
The
fundamental moral.
AND CULTURE
INSTINCT and
legal
religious aspects
205
must thus be regarded not
as the direct outgrowth of the matrimonial tendency
animals
in
but
as
institution imposes
its
cultural
This
substitute.
upon man and woman a type
of
behaviour which corresponds as closely to the needs of
human
the
species as the innate tendencies in animals
correspond to theirs.
As we
shall see, the
culture binds in the
most powerful means by which
husband and wife to each other consists
moulding and organizing of their emotions and
in the shaping of their personal attitudes.
This process
we have opportunity to fully, and in we shall find the essential differences between animal and human bonds. While in animals we find a chain study more
shall
it
of linked instincts succeeding each other
each other,
human behaviour
is
and replacing
defined
by a fuUy
organized emotional attitude, a sentiment,
While
technically called in psychology.
we have a
series of physiological
happening
within
the
organism,
determines an innate response, in
in the
moments, each
it
is
animal events
of
which
man we have
continuously developing system of emotions. first
as
From
a
the
meeting of the two prospective lovers, through
gradual interests
infatuation
and
and the growth
affections,
we can
and increasingly richer system
of
associated
follow a developing
of emotions in
which
continuity and consistency are the condition of a
happy
and harmonious
relationship.
Into
this
complex
SEX AND REPRESSION
206
attitude there enter, besides innate responses, social
elements,
and
tions
such
as
spiritual
moral
rules,
interests.
economic expecta-
The
stages of
latter
matrimonial affection are powerfully determined by the course of courtship.
and the personal
On
interest of
the other hand, courtship
two prospective lovers
is
coloured by the possibilities of future matrimony and
by
its
advantages.
In the anticipatory elements, in
which the future responses are brought to bear upon present arrangements
and experiences present,
and
;
;
in the influence of
in the constant
future,
we
see
memories
adjustment of past,
why human
relationship
presents a continuous and homogeneous growth instead of the series of clearly differentiated stages
which we
find in the animal.
In
again,
all this,
we meet
the same plasticity of
instincts already noticed in the earlier stages,
see that
considerably general
and we
though the mechanisms under culture
from
forms
into
physiological
differ
arrangements,
which society
moulds
the
human
matrimonial rules follow clearly the lines dictated by natural selection to animal species.
V PARENTAL LOVE /COURTSHIP, mating, and pregnancy lead in and man to the same end
To
spring.
:
the birth of the
this event there is also a similar
under culture.
In fact at
first
mental
off-
re-
woman and
sponse in pre-human species as well as in
man
animal
sight the act
of
birth might be quoted as the one organic event in which
man does
not differ at
indeed,
usually regarded as the one relationship which
is
all
from the animal.
Maternity,
bodily carried over from the simian to the
is
status
;
which
is
human
defined biologically and not culturally.
This view, however,
is
not correct.
Human
maternity
a relationship determined to a considerable degree
is
by
Human
cultural factors.
hand, which appears at
first
paternity, on the other
as almost completely
lacking in biological foundation, can be
deeply rooted need.
in
natural
shown to be
endowment and organic
Thus here again we are forced to compare
minutely the animal with the
human
family, to state
the similarities as well as the differences.
With the animal,
birth changes the relationship
between the two mates. into the family.
A new member
has arrived
The mother responds to it immediately. 207
SEX AND REPRESSION
2o8
She it
watches
licks the offspring,
with her body, and feeds
it
it
warms
constantly,
with her breasts.
The
early maternal cares imply certain anatomical arrange-
ments such as the pouches
milk-glands in the mammals. in
and the
in the marsupials
There comes a response
the mother to the appearance of the offspring.
There
also a response in the
is
young
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
it
is,
in fact,
perhaps the most unquestionable type of instinctive activity.
human
The
mother
endowed
is
anatomical equipment and,
with
similar
in her body, conception,
pregnancy, and childbirth entail a series of changes
analogous to the gestation of any other mammal.
When
the child
stitutes
human
is
born the bodily status which con-
animal motherhood mother.
to be found also in the
is
Her breasts swollen with milk
the child to suck with an impulse
and powerful
as the infant's
as
hunger and
invite
elementary thirst.
The
needs of the child for a warm, comfortable, and safe place dovetail into the extremely strong, passionate desire of the
mother to clasp the
and
correlated to her tenderness
infant.
They
solicitude
for
are
the
child's welfare.
Yet
in
no human
society,
might be
in culture, is
biological
endowment
however high or low
maternity simply a matter of
or of innate impulses.
influences analogous to those relations
it
between lovers
and
Cultural
we found determining imposing obligations
;
AND CULTURE
INSTINCT
between consorts, are at work even
mother
relation of the
follows certain customs ceedings.
becomes a concern of the
The mother has
community.
moulding the
From the moment
to the child.
of conception this relation
in
209
to observe taboos, she
and submits to
ritual pro-
In higher societies these are largely but not
completely replaced by hygienic and moral rules in lower
they belong to the domain of magic and
religion.
But
all
such customs and precepts aim at
the welfare of the unborn child. For
its
sake the mother
has to undergo ceremonial treatment, suffer privations
and
discomforts.
Thus an obligation
is
imposed upon
the prospective mother in anticipation of her future instinctive response. feelings,
culture
Her
dictates
duties run ahead of her
and prepares her future
attitude.
After birth the scheme of traditional relations less
powerful and active.
rules
which
of the
isolate the
is
not
Ceremonies of purification,
mother and child from the
community, baptismal
rites
and
rites of
rest
the
reception of the newborn infant into the tribe, create
one and
all
a special bond between the two.
customs exist societies.
both
in
patrilineal
Such
and matrUineal
In these latter there are, as a rule, even more
elaborate arrangements and the mother
is
brought into
yet closer contact with the child, not onl}^ at the outset
but also at a later period.
Thus
it
can be said without exaggeration that culture
SEX AND REPRESSION
210
in its traditional bidding duplicates the instinctive drive.
More
precisely
time,
all
and
anticipates
it
At the same
its rulings.
cultural influences simply endorse, amplify,
specialize the natural tendencies, those
which bid
the mother tenderly to suckle, to protect, and to care for her offspring.
we
If
try to
draw the
of father to child in
find that
it
is
animal and
between the relation
human
difficult to find
endowment could
exist.
out what instinctive
As a matter
of fact, in higher
cultures at least the necessity for imposing the
marriage
is
practically
that a father has to be
An
bond
and theoretically due to the
made
illegitimate child has,
legitimate one
and the
extent because
it is
as a rule,
latter
its is
natural father as a
cared for to a large
the father's duty.
Does that mean
father
be possible for us to show that the is,
impulses
on the contrary, endowed with
窶馬ot
fact
no chance of
that there are no innate paternal tendencies in It will
of
to look after his children.
same care from
receiving the
we
societies,
easy to discover the cultural elements
humanity but
in
parallel
man ? human
definite
sufficient to establish natural paternity,
but powerful enough to serve as the raw material out of which custom
Let us
mammals. there,
first
is
fashioned.
look at paternity
We know
among
that the male
is
the higher
indispensable
because, owing to long pregnancy, lactation,
and education
of the young, the female
and her offspring
AND CULTURE
INSTINCT
211 Correlated
need a strong and interested protector.
with this need we find what has been called in the previous
This
chapter the matrimonial response.
response, which induces the male to look after the
pregnant female,
is
not weakened by the act of birth,
but, on the contrary,
it
becomes stronger and develops
into a tendency on the part of the male to protect the
whole family.
The matrimonial attachment between
the two partners has to be regarded biologically as an intermediate stage leading up to paternal attachment.
Turning now to
human
we
societies,
see that the
need, far from abating, becomes even stronger.
woman
pregnant and lactant
helpless than her simian
increases with culture.
sister,
is
The
not less but more
and
this helplessness
The children again need not
only the ordinary cares of animal infancy, not merely suckling and tending,
as well as the education of
certain innate tendencies, but also such instruction in
language, tradition, and handicraft as
even in the simplest
human
is
indispensable
societies.
Can we therefore imagine that as humanity was passing
from a state of nature into culture the
fundamental tendency in the male, which under the
new
conditions was
even more imperative, should
be gradually lessened or be led to disappear state of affairs laws.
It
is,
observed in
would run counter to
in fact, completely denied
human
societies.
all
by
For, once a
all
?
Such a
biological
the facts
man
is
made
— SEX AND REPRESSION
212
to remain with his wife to guard her pregnancy, to
observe the various duties which he usually has to fulfill
at birth, there can be not the slightest doubt that
his response to the offspring is that of impulsive interest
and tender attachment. Thus we
see an interesting difference between the
working of cultural and natural endowment. Culture in the
form
of law, morals,
and custom
—forces the male
into the position in which he has to submit to the
natural situation, that
he has to keep guard over
is,
the pregnant woman.
It
forces
him
also,
through
various means, to share in her anticipatory interest in
But once forced
the child.
into this position, the
male
responds invariably with strong interests and positive feelings for the offspring.
And this brings us to a very interesting point. In ^however they might differ in the all human societies
—
patterns
of
sexual
morality,
in
the
knowledge of
embryology, and in their types of courtship universally found
By
legitimacy.
a
girl
is
pregnant.
what might be
this I
mean
that in
—there
is
called the rule of all
human
societies
bidden to be married before she becomes
Pregnancy and childbirth on the part
unmarried young a disgrace.^
Such
woman is
of
an
are invariably regarded as
the case in the very free com-
^ Wester marck in the History of Human Marriage, 1921, vol. i, pp. 138-157, cites approximately 100 cases of primitive peoples who are characterized by their pre-nuptial chastity. But many of
AND CULTURE
INSTINCT
213
munities of Melanesia described in this essay. the case in
human
all
have any information. anthropological
girls,
I
know
Hterature
children,
illegitimate
societies concerning
that
would enjoy the same
of is
of
a
no
Such
is
which we
single instance in
community where
children of unmarried
social
treatment and have
the same social status as legitimate ones.
The
universal postulate of legitimacy has a great
sociological significance,
acknowledged.
It
which
means that
is
not yet sufficiently
in all
human
societies
moral tradition and law decree that the group consisting
of
a
woman and
sociologically complete unit.
her
offspring
The ruUng
is
not
a
of culture
runs here again on entirely the same lines as natural
endowment
;
consist of the
And
it
declares that the
human
family must
male as well as the female.
in this culture finds a ready response in the
the statements quoted do not afford very definite evidence of this Thus to say of certain tribes that " chastity is prized in man or woman " or that " a good deal of value is laid upon the virginity fact.
of the bride " is not to give proof of lack of pre-marital intercourse.
What, however, is of extreme importance in this computation of evidence from our point of view is that the only thing it definitely indicates is the universality of the postulate of legitimacy. Thus twenty-five of the cases quoted refer, not to chastity, but to the prohibition of an unmarried girl being with child. Further, more
than a score of others indicate, not the absence of illicit sexual relations, but that when they occur, censure, or punishment, or a fine, or compulsion of the two parties to marry, according to the In fact though the total evidence is not tribe, follows discovery. conclusive as regards chastity it does prove that the postulate of legitimacy is of extremely wide prevalence. The two problems should be kept distinct, from the point of view of our argument.
SEX AND REPRESSION
214
The
emotional attitudes of the male. stages of culture interest,
father at
and
interested in his children,
is
no matter how
all
this
might be rationalized
it
certain patrilineal societies,
is
in
exactly the same in
matrilineal societies where the child
is
neither an heir
nor successor to his father nor even usually regarded as the offspring of his body.^
And even when,
polyandrous society, there
no
any knowledge and
is
possibility at all for
matter of who might
interest in the
be the begetter, the one who
is
selected to act as the
father responds emotionally to this It
as in a
call.
would be interesting to inquire
in
what way we
could imagine the working of the instinctive tendency of fatherhood.
With the mother the response
determined by the bodily
facts.
is
plainly
It is the child
whom
she has created in her
womb
and be interested
in.
With the man there can be no
such
between
correlation
fertilizes
the female
that she
the
ovum on
is
going to love
seminal
the one hand and the
sentimental attitude on the other. It seems to the
which
cell
me
that
only factors which determine the sentimental
attitude in the male parent are connected with the life
led together with the
If this is correct,
we
see
mother during her pregnancy.
how
the dictates of culture are
necessary in order to stimulate and organize emotional attitudes in
man and how
innate
^ Compare the writer's The Father "Psyche Miniatures," 1927.
endowment in
Primitive
is
indis-
Psychology,
AND CULTURE
INSTINCT
Social forces alone could not
pensable to culture.
many
impose so
strong biological
215
duties on the male, nor without a
endowment could he carry them out
with such spontaneous emotional response.
The
cultural elements
which enter into the father-
to-child relationship are closely parallel to those
The
determine maternity.
in the mother's taboos, or, at least,
some others
side
by
prohibition which
welfare of the child
he has to maintain
A
side with her,
is is
with a pregnant wife.
which
father usually has a share
definitely
special type of
associated with the
the taboo on sexual intercourse
At
birth there are again duties
The most famous
for the father to perform.
of these is
the couvade, a custom in which the husband has to
take over the symptoms of post-natal the
business of
But though
wife
and
illness
goes about the ordinary
disability while
is
the most extreme
form of affirmation of paternity,
some analogous
life.
arrangement, by which the
this
man
shares in certain
post-natal burdens of his wife, or, at least, has to carry
on actions It is
not
scheme.
in
sympathy with
her, exist in all societies.
difficult to place this
type of custom in our
Even the apparently absurd
idea of the
couvade presents to us a deep meaning and a necessary function. If
it is
of high biological value for the
human
family to consist of both father and mother traditional customs
a
and
;
if
rules are there to establish
social situation of close
moral proximity between
SEX AND REPRESSION
2i6 father
and
child
;
if all
such customs aim at drawing
the man's attention to his offspring, then the couvade
man
which makes
simulate the birth-pangs and the
maternity
illness of
of great value
is
and
stimulus
necessary
expression
The couvade and
tendencies.
and provides the
all
for
paternal
the customs of
its
type serve to accentuate the principle of legitimacy, the child's need of a father.
In
we have again the two sides of the question. alone never determine human behaviour.
all this
Instincts
Rigid instincts which would prevent man's adaptation
new
to any
set of conditions are useless to the
The
species.
plasticity of instinctive tendencies is the
But the tendencies are
condition of cultural advance.
Although
there and cannot be developed arbitrarily.
the character of the maternal relation
by
culture
outside
bond between
all
father
emphasize the closeness of the
and
child,
mdke them dependent upon each note
that
anticipatory feelings,
determined
tradition, they all correspond to the natural
tendency, for they
to
is
although the obligations are imposed from
;
by
human
:
they
many
of
these
they isolate them and other. It social
is
important
relations
are
they prepare the father for his future dictate
to
him beforehand
certain
responses, which he will later develop.
Paternity
we have
seen cannot be regarded as a
merely social arrangement. place
man
Social elements simply
into a situation in which he can respond
INSTINCT
AND CULTURE
emotionally, and they dictate to
him a
series of actions
by which the paternal tendencies can as
paternity
find
their
Thus, while we find that maternity
expression. social
217
well is
as
biological,
we must
affirm
is
that
determined also by biological elements,
that therefore in
its
the maternal bond.
make-up In
all
it is
closely analogous to
this culture
emphasizes
rather than overrides the natural tendencies.
It
re-makes, with other elements, the family into the
same pattern to run riot.
as
we
find in nature.
Culture refuses
VI
THE PERSISTENCE OF FAMILY
nnHE
family
life
of
TIES IN
MAN
mammals always lasts beyond the and the higher the
birth of the offspring
species
the longer both parents have to look after their progeny.
The gradual ripening
of the child needs
more protracted
care and training on the part of both father and mother,
and these have to remain united
But
ones. life.
in
As soon
to look after the little
no animal species does the family
last for
as the children are independent they leave
the parents.
This
is
in
keeping with the essential
needs of the species, for any association, with corresponding unless
it
becomes
ties
burden to
a
has some specific function to
its
animals
fulfill.
With man, however, new elements
enter.
Apart
from the tender cares dictated by nature and endorsed
by custom and
tradition, there enters the element of
Not only
cultural education. instincts
into
is
there a need of training
development,
full
instruction in food-gathering
there
is
and
the
in
to animals.
Man
man
animal
movements,
also the necessity of developing a
cultural habits as indispensable to
skill
as
specific
number
of
as instincts are
has to teach his children manual
and knowledge
in arts
and
218
crafts
;
language and
AND CULTURE
INSTINCT
the traditions of moral culture
customs which make up In
all this
there
is
219
the manners and
;
social organization.
the need of special co-operation
between the two generations, the older which hands on
and the younger which takes over
tradition.
as the very
workshop
we see the family again
And
here
of cultural
development, for continuity of tradition, especially at the lowest levels of development,
condition of
human
culture
upon the organization to insist that with the
and
this continuity
of the family.
human
the most vital
is
It is
depends
important
family this function, the
maintenance of the continuity of tradition,
For man
important as the propagation of the race. could no more survive
if
he were deprived of culture
than culture could survive without the carry
it
on.
Newer psychology teaches
that the earliest steps of
as
is
human
human us,
race to
moreover,
training, those
happen within the family, are
of
an
which
educational
importance which has been completely overlooked by
But
earlier students.
enormous
at present,
if
it
the influence of the family
must have been even greater
at the beginnings of culture,
the only school of
is
man and
where
this institution
was
the education received was
simple but had to be given with a vigour of outline
and a strength
of imperative not necessary at higher
levels.
In this process of parental education by which the continuity of culture
is
maintained we see the most
SEX AND REPRESSION
220
human
important form of division of functions in society
:
that between giving the lead and taking
between cultural superiority and
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; the
inferiority.
it,
Teaching
process of imparting technical information and
moral values
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;requires a special
Not only must the parent have an
form of co-operation. interest in instructing
the child, and the child an interest in being taught,
but a special emotional setting
is
There
also necessary.
must be reverence, submission, and confidence on the one hand, tenderness, feeling of authority, and desire to guide on the other. Training cannot be done without
some authority and
The truths
prestige.
revealed,
the examples given, the orders imposed will not reach their
aim or command obedience unless they are backed
up by those
specific attitudes of tender subordination
and loving authority which are sound parental relations to the attitudes are relation
most
difficult
characteristic of all
child.
These correlated
and most important
in the
Owing
to the
between the son and the
father.
vigour and initiative of the young and the conservative authority of the old male, there in the establishment of a
The mother,
is
a certain difficulty
permanent reverent
as the nearest guardian
affectionate helpmate, usually finds
no
and the most difficulties in
the earlier stages of relation to children. relation is
to
attitude.
In the
between son and mother, however, which,
continue harmonious, should
remain
if it
one of
submission, reverence, and subordination, there enter
AND CULTURE
INSTINCT
other disturbing elements at a later stage of
known from
these, already
book,
we
shall presently
221
To
life.
the previous parts of this
have once more to return.
The mature animal departs naturally from parents.
In
man
the need for more enduring bonds
The education
indisputable.
is
of the children, first of
binds them to the family for a long period beyond
all,
But even the end
their maturity.
of cultural education
The contacts
not the final signal for dissolution.
is
its
training
and
established
for
cultural
they
for
the establishment of further social
serve
last
longer,
organization.
Even
after a
grown-up individual has
and established a new household remains active.
In
all
left his
parents
his relation to
them
primitive societies, without
exception, the local community, the clan or the tribe, is
organized by a gradual extension of family
social nature tribal
groups
of secret is
societies,
ties.
The
totemic units and
invariably based on courtship ideas,
associated with local habitation
authority and rank, but with
by the
principle of
all this it is still definitely
linked with the original family bond.^ It is in this actual all
and empirical relationship between
wider social groupings on the one hand and the
family on the other that
we have
to register the
cannot document this point of view more extensively here. It be developed in a work on The Psychology of Kinship, in preparation for the International Library of Psychology. 1
will
I
SEX AND REPRESSION
222
fundamental importance of the
upon the pattern
ties
mother, to brother and
endurance of family pattern of
all
and psychologists are fuUy
of
Thus the
followers.
his
beyond maturity
ties
social organization,
we examined
is
the
and the condition
we reached
This conclusion
chapter, where
and
In this, again, anthro-
sister.
of co-operation in all economic, religious,
matters.
his social
on one side the fantastic theories
Morgan and some
of
up
all
of his relation to father
pologists, psycho-analysts
in agreement, putting
In primitive
latter.
societies the individual does build
and magical
in a previous
the alleged gregarious
and found that there is neither an instinct But if social nor a tendency towards " herding ". instinct
bonds cannot be reduced to pre-human gregariousness, they must have been derived from the development of the only relationship which his
animal ancestors
and
:
man
has taken over from
the relationship between husband
between parents and children, between
wife,
brothers and
sisters, in
short the relationship of the
undivided family. This being
so,
we
see that the endurance of family
bonds and the corresponding biological and cultural attitude
the of
indispensable not only
is
continuity of tradition cultural
have change
to
register in
the
what
but also
And
co-operation. is
instinctive
the sake of
for
in
for this
perhaps
endowment
the of
the sake fact
we
deepest
animal
AND CULTURE
INSTINCT and man,
human
for in
223
the extension
society
of
family bonds beyond maturity does not follow the
among
instinctive pattern to be found
We
animals.
can no longer speak of plastic innate tendencies,
for,
bonds extended beyond maturity do
since the family
Moreover
not exist in animals, they cannot be innate.
the utility and function of life-long family bonds are
conditioned by culture and not
we
Parallel to this,
by
biological needs.
see that in animals there
is
no
tendency to maintain the family beyond the stage In man, culture creates
of biological serviceability.
a
new need, the need to continue close relations between
parents and children for the whole
hand
this
need
;
on the other
endurance of bonds which
of life-long
form the pattern and starting-point for organization.
which
all
the one
conditioned by the transmission of
is
culture from one generation to another
by the need
On
life.
The family
kinship
is
is
social
all
the biological grouping to
invariably referred and which
determines by rules of descent and inheritance the social status of the offspring.
As can be
never becomes irrelevant to a
seen, this relation
man and
has constantly
to be kept alive.
Culture, then, creates a
human bond
which there
for
animal kingdom.
And
as
is
we
no prototype
beyond
endowment and natural precedent, man.
Two
it
of
in the
shall see, in this
creative act, where culture steps
serious dangers for
new type
very
instinctive
also
creates
powerful temptations.
224
SEX AND REPRESSION
the temptation of sex and that of rebeUion, arise at the very
moment
of cultural
Within the group which steps in
human
perils of
humanity
emancipation from nature.
is
responsible for the
progress there arise :
first
the two main
the tendency to incest and the
revolt against authority.
VII
THE PLASTICITY OF TXT'E
shall
HUIVIAN INSTINCTS
proceed presently to discuss at some
length the two perils of incest and revolt, but let
in
us rapidly survey the gist of the last few chapters
man and
which the family among
compared. of
first
We
behaviour
is
animals has been
found that in both the general course
Thus
paralleled in its external form.
there exists a circumscribed courtship, usually limited in time,
and defined
form both
in its
human com-
in
munities and in animal species. Again, selective mating leads to an exclusive matrimonial
monogamous marriage in
animal and in
man we
life
which the
of
Finally
a prevalent type.
is
found parenthood, implying
the same kind of cares and obligations.
In short, the
forms of behaviour and their functions are similar.
The preservation
of species
through selective mating,
conjugal exclusiveness, and parental care
aim
of
human
institutions
as
well
is
as
the main
animal
of
instinctive arrangements.
Side
by
side with similarities
we found conspicuous
in the
ends but in the means
by which the ends were reached.
The mechanism by
differences.
These were not
which the selection
of
mating
is
carried on,
matrimo-nial relations are maintained and 225
by which parental Q
SEX AND REPRESSION
226
cares established,
is
in the
animal entirely innate and
based on anatomical endowment, physiological change,
and
The whole
instinctive response.
for all animals of the species.
same pattern
mechanism
series
While there
is different.
tendency to court, to mate, and to care
and while this tendency animal,
it is
is
shows the In
man
the
exists a general for the offspring
as strong in
man
as in the
no longer clearly defined once and
for all
throughout the species. The landmark has disappeared
and has been replaced by cultural sexual impulse
is
limitations.
permanently active, there
is
The
no rut
nor any automatic disappearance of female attraction afterwards.
There
is
no natural paternity, and even
the maternal relations are not exclusively defined by innate responses.
Instead of the precise instinctive
determinants we have cultural elements which shape the innate tendencies. in
the relation
All this implies a deep change
between instinct and physiological
process and the modification of which they are capable.
This
change we have
instincts ".
termed the
" plasticity
The expression covers the
described above in detail.
They aU show
set
of
of facts
that in
man
the various physiological elements which release instinct
have disappeared, while
at the
same time there appears
a traditional training of the innate tendencies into cultural habit responses.
were analyzed concretely. forbid incest
These cultural mechanisms
They
and adultery
;
are the taboos which
they are the cultural
AND CULTURE
INSTINCT releases of the
and
ideal
mating
instinct
norms as well as the
they are the moral
;
practical inducements
which keep husband and wife together sanction of the marriage
tie
legal
;
As we know,
these
all
co-determinants closely follow the general
course imposed
however,
detail,
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;the
the dictates which shape
and express parental tendencies. cultural
227
by nature on animal behaviour. the
concrete
forms
In
courtship,
of
matrimony and parenthood vary with the culture and the forces
by which they shape human behaviour
are no longer mere instincts but habits into which
man
The
has been educated by tradition.
social
sanction of law, the pressure of public opinion, the psychological sanction of religion
ments
and the
direct induce-
of reciprocity replace the automatic drives of
the instincts.
Thus culture does not lead man
any
into
Man
divergent from the courses of nature. to court his prospective
and to
yield to him.
mate and she
The two
still
still
direction still
has
has to choose
have to keep to one
another and be ready to receive the offspring and watch
over them.
The woman
still
has to bear and the
to remain with her as her guardian. to tend
and educate
their children,
Parents
still
man have
and under culture
they are as attached to them as under nature animals are to their offspring.
But
in all this
variety of patterns replaces in
an astounding
human
societies the
one fixed type imposed by instinctive endowment upon
SEX AND REPRESSION
228 all
the individuals of a single animal species.
response of instinct
is
replaced
by
Custom, law, moral rule, ritual, enter into
all
But the main
The
direct
traditional norms.
and
religious value
the stages of love-making and parenthood. line of their action invariably
to that of animal instincts.
The chain
runs parallel of responses
which regulate animal mating constitute a prototype of the gradual unfolding
attitude.
We
and ripening
of
must pass now to a more
man's cultural detailed
parison of the processes of animal instincts and sentiments.
com-
human
VIII
FROM INSTINCT TO SENTIMENT
TN
the last chapter
we summarized
of our comparison
between the constitution of the
human
animal and the
the salient points
Through the
family.
dis-
appearance of the definite physiological landmarks, through the increasing cultural control in
which at
first
disorder.
we can
adjustments simplified in
of
is
response, a variety
not really the case.
In the
see that the varying emotional
mating
one direction.
on their sexual side in
there
seems to introduce nothing but chaos and
This, however,
place
frst
human
complexity in the
arises a
man
human family are The human bonds culminate
in
the
in marriage,
on their parental side
a life-long enduring family.
In both cases the
emotions centre around one definite object, whether this
be the consort, the
child, or the parent.
Thus the
exclusive dominance of one individual appears as the first
characteristic in the
growth
of
human
emotional
attitudes.
As
a matter of fact
we ascend
in the
the higher species.
seed
is
we can
see this tendency even as
animal kingdom from the lower to
Among
the lower animals the male
often scattered broadcast and the fertilizing of 229
SEX AND REPRESSION
230
the female egg
The
is
left
entirely to physical agencies.
equation,
personal
selection
and
adjustment
develop gradually and attain their fullest development
among
the highest animals.
In man, however, this tendency enforced by definite institutions. is
by a number
defined
is
translated
and
Mating, for instance,
of sociological factors
some
of
which exclude a number of females, while others partners or stipulate definite
indicate
the
unions.
In certain forms of marriage the individual
bond
is
completely established by social elements,
such
as
suitable
infant
marriages.
betrothal
or
prearranged
socially
In any case, right through courtship,
matrimonial relations and the care of the children, the two individuals gradually establish an exclusive personal
tie.
A number of interests of economic, sexual,
and religious nature are for each partner dominated
legal
by the personality religious sanction of
a
of the other.
are
in
human
legal
marriage establishes, as
lifelong, socially enforceable
Thus
The
and the
we know,
bond between the two.
relations the emotional adjustments
dominated by one object rather than by the
situation of the
moment. Within the same
relationship
the emotions and the type of drives and interests
vary
:
they are usually one-sided and disconnected
at the beginning of the courtship, they gradually ripen
into a personal affection during that period, they are
immensely enriched and complicated by the common
INSTINCT life in
marriage, even
Yet throughout
AND CULTURE
more
so
by the
this variety of
the permanence of the object,
231
arrival of children.
emotional adjustments
its
deep hold on the other
indivi<;iuars life constantly increases.
The bond cannot
be broken easily and the resistances are usually both psychological and social. Divorce in savage and civilized
communities, for instance, or a rupture between parent
and child
is
both a personal tragedy and a sociological
mishap.
But though the emotions which enter into the human
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;though
they
family bond are constantly changing
depend upon circumstances instance, entailing love
and passionate
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;matrimonial
and sorrow as well as
inclinations
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
love,
for
joy, fear,
though they are always
complex and never exclusively dominated by an instinct,
yet they are
organized,
systems.
in
fact
by no means chaotic
they are arranged into definite
The general attitude
other, of a parent to a child
any way
accidental.
dispose of a
or dis-
number
of
and vice versa
Each type of
one consort to the is
not in
of relationship
must
emotional attitudes which
subserve certain sociological ends, and each attitude gradually grows up according to a definite scheme
through which the emotions are organized.
Thus
in
the relations between the two consorts the sentiment begins with the gradual awakening of sexual passion.
In culture,
moment.
this, as
we know, is never a merely instinctive
Various
factors,
such
as
self-interest.
SEX AND REPRESSION
232
economic attraction,
social
advancement, modify the
charm
man
or vice versa, in low levels
of
of a girl for a
culture
well
as
as
in
more highly developed
This interest once aroused, the passionate
civilizations.
up by the
attitude has to be gradually built
tradi-
customary course of courtship prevailing
tional,
a given
No
society.
sooner has this
in
attachment
been built up, than the decision to enter marriage introduces a
contract, establishes a
first
sociologically defined relationship.
a preparation for matrimonial legal
bond
ties
common
of
to note that the
life,
while in the
not
become reorganized.
predominant
It is
important
change from courtship to matrimony,
and
difficult
human
eliminated
effaced, entirely
still
and here the emotional
in all societies is the subject of
entails a definite
are
The
of marriage as a rule changes the relation-
attitudes have to
which
less
this period
takes place.
ship in which the sexual elements are
mto one
more or
Through
new
to be incorporated.
proverbs and jokes,
readjustment of attitudes
:
relationship the sexual elements
nor the memories of courtship interests
The new
and new emotions have attitudes are built
upon
the foundation of the old and personal tolerance and
patience in trying situations have to be formed at the expense of sexual
charms and of
and
the
attractiveness.
gratitude
for
earlier
life
have a
definite
form
an
integral
part
of
The
the erotic
initial
pleasure
psychological value
the
later
feelings.
AND CULTURE
INSTINXT
We
find
sentiments into
relation
the carrying over of previous memories
:
stages.
later of
We
shall
to
child
mother
presently analyze the
and
ripening and is
organizing the
always
associated
bond
desire
is
Between husband
indispensable, as well as an
of personal attractiveness
patibility of character.
and com-
The sentimental elements
courtship, the passionate feelings of
must be incorporated
attitude
emotional
associated with the bodily relation.
and wife sexual
son,
emotions takes place.
dominant
a
to
father
system of gradual
and show there that the same
There
human
important element of
an
this
in
233
first
of
possession
into the calmer affection, allow-
ing husband and wife to enjoy each other's
company
throughout the best part of their days. These elements
must
also be
harmonized with the community
and community
of interest
of
work
which unite the two into
the joint managers of the household.
It is
a well-known
fact that each transition between courtship and sexual
cohabitation, between that stage life
of
later
parental
fuller
matrimony, between married
life,
common life
and
constitutes a crisis full of difficulties,
dangers and maladjustments. at
and the
These are the points
which the attitude undergoes a special phase of
reorganization.
The mechanism which we is
see at
work
in this process
based on a reaction between innate drives,
emotions and social factors.
As we have
human
seen, the
SEX AND REPRESSION
234
organization of a society has economic, social, and religious ideals to impress
of
upon the sexual
men and women. These
rules
exogamy,
of
exclude certain mates by
caste
of
inclination
or
division,
mental
of
They surround others by a spurious halo
training.
of
economic attractiveness, of high rank, or superior social status.
In the relation between parents and
children
tradition
also
certain
dictates
which even anticipate the appearance to
The
which they pertain.
action of the sociological
when we
mechanisms
is
work
in the
growing mentality of the young.
tion,
especially
place
by the
and of
specially important
in simpler societies,
surrounding
ripening mind. of caste,
it
at
Educa-
does not take
moral
but rather by the influence
cultural
Thus the
environment
on
the
child learns the principles
rank or clan division by the concrete avoid-
ances, preferences
and submissions
into
being trained by practical measures. is
see
explicit inculcation of sociological,
intellectual principles,
the
attitudes
of the objects
A
which he
is
certain ideal
thus impressed upon the mind and by the time the
sexual interest
begins to
act
the
taboos and the
inducements, the forms of correct courtship, the ideals of desirable
matrimony are framed
in his
mind.
It is
imperative to realize that this moulding and gradual inculcation of ideals
is
not done by any mysterious
atmosphere, but by a number of well-defined, concrete influences.
If
we
cast
back to the previous ideas of
INSTINCT AND CULTURE this
book and follow the hfe
peasant Europe
or
savage
the child within the parental
by
the
rebuke
of
an individual
of
home by
parents,
the
in
we can
Melanesia
how
235
is
see
educated
the
public
opinion of the elder men, by the feeling of shame
and discomfort aroused by the reactions certain types of decent
of
his
them
to
Thus the categories
conduct.
and indecent are created, the avoidance
of forbidden relationships, the
certain other groups
toward the mother,
and brother. of such a
of
As a
encouragement towards
and the subtler tones
maternal uncle,
father,
final
of feeling sister
and most powerful framework
system of cultural values, we have to note
the material arrangements of habitation, settlement,
and household
Thus
chattels.
in
Melanesia
the
individual family house, the bachelors' quarters, the
arrangements of patrilocal marriage and of matrilineal rights are all associated,
on the one hand with the
structure of villages, houses, divisions,
and the nature of territorial
and on the other with
moral laws, and various shades of
we can
see that
man
injunctions, taboos, feeling.
From
this
gradually expresses his emotional
attitudes in legal, social,
and material arrangements
and that these again
upon
react
his
conduct by mould-
ing the development of his behaviour
Man
and outlook.
shapes his surroundings according to his cultural
attitudes,
and his secondary environment again produces
the typical cultural sentiments.
SEX AND REPRESSION
236
And will
important point which
this brings us to a very
allow us to see
become
plastic
why
in
humanity
had
instinct
and innate responses have to be
to
trans-
formed into attitudes or sentiments. Culture depends directly upon the degree to which the
human emotions can be
and
trained, adjusted,
organized into complex and plastic systems. ultimate efficiency culture gives
man mastery
In
its
over his
surroundings by the development of mechanical things,
weapons, means of transportation and measures for protection
however, can only be used
apparatus there
of using
to the material outfit
generation.
Now
if
side
is
sheer
reason
have
it.
The human adjustments
to be learned
anew by each
this learning, the tradition of
know-
of
knowledge from one generation
to another entails hardships, efforts
fund of patience and love the younger.
felt
and an inexhaustible
by the
This emotional
older generation outfit,
only partly based on the endowment, cultural actions
which
it
dominates are
again,
for
The continuity
of
social
tradition,
entails a personal emotional relation in
in
all
artificial,
and therefore not provided with innate
of responses
by
nor by mere instinctive endowment.
The transmission
specific,
These,
side with the
not a process which can be carried on
ledge,
for
by
transmitted the traditional
also
is
knowledge and art
and climate.
weather
against
is
the
non-
drives.
other words,
which a number
have to be trained and developed into
INSTINCT AND CULTURE complex
The extent
attitudes.
to
237
which parents can
be taxed with burdens of cultural education depends
upon the capacity tion to cultural
aspects culture
and is
human
of the
social responses.
directly dependent
But the
man
relation of
culture even in
;
its
the lengthening of the
is
upon the
one of
its
plasticity
from one individual to simplest forms
be handled except by co-operation.
beyond
in
to culture consists not only
in transmission of tradition
it
Thus
endowment.
of innate
another
character for adapta-
strict biological
cannot
As we have
seen,
within the family
ties
maturity which allows on the
one hand of cultural education and on the other of
work
in
common, that
is,
co-operation.
The animal
family of course has also a rudimentary division of functions, consisting mainly in the provision of food
by the male during later
on
father
certain stages of maternal care
in the protection
and mother.
Man
is
of
and nutrition afforded by
In animal species, however, both
the nutritive adjustment
scheme
and
to
environment
and the
economic division of functions are
rigid
allowed through culture to adapt himself to a
very wide range of economic environment and this
he controls, not by rigid for
developing
organization, of diet.
But
special
instincts,
but by the capacity
technique,
special
and adjusting himself to a side
by
economic
special
form
side with this merely technical
aspect there must also go an appropriate division of
SEX AND REPRESSION
238
function and a suitable type of co-operation.
This
obviously entails various emotional adjustments under
environmental
various duties of
The economic
conditions.
husband and wife
differ.
Thus
in
an
arctic
environment the main burden of providing food
man
on the
peoples the
;
among
woman
has the greater share of providing
With the economic
for the household.
division of
functions there are associated religious, legal distinctions
charm
The
of social prestige, the value of the consort as
nature, It is its
the ideal of moral or religious
these considerably colour the relationship.
all
variety and the possibility of adjusting such
relations as the conjugal one
aUow the family
and the parental one which
to adapt itself to varying conditions
of practical co-operation
and
adapted to the material
outfit
natural environment.
How
far
this latter to
of culture
our present argument.
I
in
is
beside the point
wish to emphasize here the
fact that only plastic social ties
emotion can function
become and the
we can trace concretely
these dependencies and correlations
of
and moral
which dovetail into economic work.
practical helpmate,
in
falls
the more primitive agricultural
and adjustable systems
an animal species which
is
capable of developing a secondary environment and
thus adjusting of
Through of
itself
to the difficult outer conditions
life.
human
all this
we can
family relations
see that although the basis is
instinctive, yet the
more
INSTINCT
AND CULTURE
239
they can be moulded by experience and by education, the
more
cultural
and traditional elements these
ties
can accept, the more suitable will they be for a varied
and complex
What
division of functions.
has been said here with reference to the family
But
refers obviously also to other social ties.
contrary to what
is
in these,
the case with the bonds of the
family, the instinctive element
is
almost negligible. The
great theoretical importance of marriage
and
of
the
family runs parallel with the great practical importance
Not only
of these institutions for humanity.
is
the
family the link between biological cohesion and social cohesion,
it
relations
are
on which
also the pattern
is
The
based.
anthropologists
further
can work out
all
wider
sociologists
and
the theory of senti-
ments, of their formation under cultural conditions and of their correlation with social organization, the nearer shall
we move towards a
understanding of
correct
Incidentally
primitive sociology.
I
exhaustive description of primitive family courtship
life,
primitive
customs and clan organization
out from sociology such words " consciousness
kind
of
",
as "
group
" group
an
think that
will
rule
instinct ",
mind
",
and
similar sociological verbal panaceas.
To those acquainted with modern psychology must have become of primitive
clear that in
sociology
important theory of
working out a theory
we had
human
it
to
reconstruct
an
emotions, developed by
SEX AND REPRESSION
240
one who unquestionably deserves to be ranked as one of the greatest psychologists of our time.
Shand was the tion of
first
human
feelings,
laws of emotional
only when in
we
Mr. A. F.
to point out that in the classifica-
life,
in
the construction of the
we can reach
realize that
an empty space, but are
tangible results
human emotions do not all
float
grouped around a number
Around these objects human emotions
of objects.
are organized into
definite
Furthermore,
systems.
Shand, in his book on The Foundations of Character,
down
has laid
a
number
of laws whicji govern the
He
organization of emotions into sentiments.
shown that the moral problems
of
human
has
character
can be solved only by a study of the organization of the emotions. In our present argument,
it
has been possible
to apply Shand's theory of sentiments to a sociological
problem, and to show that a correct analysis of the
change from animal to cultural responses vindicates his views to the full.
tinguish
The
salient points
which
human attachments from animal
dis-
instincts
are the dominance of the object over the situation
the organization of emotional attitudes of the building tion into to
up
of such attitudes
;
;
the continuity
and their crystalliza-
permanent adjustable systems. Our additions
Shand's theory consist only in showing
formation
of
sentiments
is
associated
how
with
the
social
organization and with the wielding of material culture
by man.
INSTINCT An
AND CULTURE
241
important point which Shand has brought out
study of
in his
human
sentiment
is
that the leading
emotions which enter into them are not independent of each other,
but that they show certain tendencies
towards exclusion and
which follows we
shall
have to elaborate on the two
typical relations between
hand and the
father
In the analysis
repression.
mother and child on the one
and child on the
other.
This will
also help to reveal the processes of gradual clearing off
and
of repression
by which
be eliminated from a sentiment as
And
here
we should
have to
certain elements
like to
it
develops.
add that Shand 's theory
of sentiments stands really in a very close relation to
psycho-analysis.
Both
of
emotional processes in the
Both is
of
them deal with the concrete life
history of the individual.
them have independently recognized that
it
only by the study of the actual configurations of
human feelings that we can arrive at satisfactory results. Had the founders of psycho-analysis known Shand's contribution, they might have avoided a
metaphysical of
human
pitfalls, realized
number
that instinct
is
of
a part
sentiments and not a metaphysical entity,
and given us a much
less
mystical and more concrete
psychology of the unconscious.
On
Freud has supplemented the theory
two capital
points.
He was
the
the other hand, of sentiments
first
on
to state clearly
that the family was the locus of sentiment formation.
He
also has
shown that
in the formation of senti-
SEX AND REPRESSION
242
ments the process
of elimination, of clearing
paramount importance and that
mechanism
of repression
The
dangers.
is
away,
is
of
in this process the
the source of conspicuous
by psycho-
forces of repression, assigned
analysts to the mysterious endo-psychic censor can,
however, be placed by the present analysis into a
more
definite
and concrete
setting.
The
repression are the forces of the sentiment
come from the
forces of
itself.
They
principle of consistency which every
sentiment requires in order to be useful in social behaviour. are
The negative emotions
incompatible with
the
submission
authority and the reverence guidance. relation of in
and
trust
and anger
to
parental cultural
in
Sensual elements cannot enter into the
mother and son
if
this relation is to
harmony with the natural
division
obtaining within the household.
we
of hate
pass in the following chapter.
To
remain
of functions
these
questions
IX
MOTHERHOOD AND THE TEMPTATIONS OF INCEST '
I
'HE
subject of the " origins " of incest prohibitions
is
one of the most discussed and vexed questions
of anthropology.
exogamy
or
with the problem of
It is associated
forms of marriage, with
primitive
of
hypotheses of former promiscuity and so on. There not the slightest doubt that exogamy the prohibition of incest, that
it is
is
is
correlated with
merely an extension
of this taboo, exactly as the institution of the clan with
terms of relationship
classificatory
its
extension of
the
family and
We
nomenclature.
its
is
mode
simply an of
kinship
shall not enter into this problem,
especially because in this
we
are in agreement with
such anthropologists as Westermarck and Lowie.^
To
clear the
ground
it
will
be well to remember that
biologists are in
agreement on the point that there
no detrimental
effect
incestuous unions. ^
is
produced upon the species by
Whether
incest in the state of
Compare Westermarck's History of Human
Marriage and arguments will be contributed by the present writer in the forthcoming book on ^
Lowie's
Primitive
Society.
Some
additional
Kinship. *
For a discussion of the biological nature of inbreeding, cf. and the Clash of Culture, 1927.
Pitt-Rivers, The Contact of Races
243
SEX AND REPRESSION
244
nature might be detrimental is
it
if
occurred regularly
In the state of nature the
an academic question.
young animals leave the parental group and mate
random with any females encountered
at
Incest at best can be but a sporadic
during rut.
In animal incest, then, there
occurrence.
harm nor obviously
logical
Moreover,
there
animals there
is
is
is
no bio-
is
there any moral harm.
no reason to suppose that
any
neither bio-
is
danger nor temptation and in consequence no
logical
instinctive barriers against incest, with
contrary,
we
man, on the
find in all societies that the strongest
and the most fundamental prohibition are
barrier
those against incest.
we
This
shall
try to explain,
by any hypotheses about a primitive
legislation
act
hold,
but as the result of
spring
up under
culture.
same house-
two phenomena which
In the
first place,
under the
mechanisms which constitute the human family temptations to incest
by
come
of
nor by any assumptions of special aversion
to sexual intercourse with inmates of the
side
in
special temptation.
While with the animal then there
not
at maturity
arise.
In the
second
serious place,
side with the sex temptations, specific perils
into being for the
human
family, due to the
existence of the incestuous tendencies. point, therefore,
we have
to agree with
On
the
first
Freud and
disagree with the well-known theory of Westermarck,
who assumes
innate disinclination to mate between
INSTINCT members
to incest
245
In assuming, how-
same household.
of the
a temptation
ever,
AND CULTURE
under culture, we do
not follow the psycho-analytic theory which regards the infantile attachment to the mother as essentially sexual.
This
is
perhaps the main thesis which Freud has
attempted to establish in his three contributions to
He
sexual theory.
between a smaU child and act of suckling,
prove that the relations
tries to its
mother, above
results that the first sexual
it
From
are essentially sexual.
towards the mother
normally an
" This fixation of libido," to
incestuous attachment.
use a psycho-analytic phrase, remains throughout
and
it is
tions
this
attachment of a male
in other words,
is,
the
all in
life,
the source of the constant incestuous tempta-
which have to be repressed and as such form one
of the
two components
This theory
it is
of the CEdipus complex.
impossible to adopt.
between an infant and
its
from a sexual attitude.
mother is Instincts
The
relation
essentially different
must be defined not
simply by introspective methods, not merely by analysis of the feeling tones such as pain all
by
their function.
definite innate
An
and pleasure, but above
instinct
is
a more or
less
mechanism by which the individual
responds to a specific situation by a definite form of
behaviour in satisfaction of definite organic wants.
The all
relation of the suckling to its
mother
induced by the desire for nutrition.
is first
of
The bodily
SEX AND REPRESSION
246
clinging of a child to its
mother again
bodily wants of warmth,
protection and guidance.
The its
child
own
which
is
not
to cope with the environment
fit
forces alone,
it
can act
is
and
as the only
of bodily attraction
its
by
medium through
the maternal organism
instinctively to the mother.
aim
satisfies
clings
it
In sexual relations the
and cUnging
is
that union
which leads to impregnation. Each of these two innate tendencies
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;the
mother-to-child behaviour
process of mating
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;cover
and the
a big range of preparatory
and consummatory actions which present certain
The
similarities.
line of division,
however,
is
clear,
because one set of acts, tendencies and feelings serves to complete the infant's unripe organism, to nourish, to protect
and warm
it
;
the other set of acts sub-
serves the union of sexual organs of a
new
We
and the production
individual.
cannot therefore accept the simple solution that
the temptation of incest
is
due to sexual relation between
The sensuous pleasure which is both relations is a component of every
the infant and mother.
common
to
successful instinctive behaviour.
The pleasure index
cannot serve to differentiate instincts, since general character of to
them
all.
It is
is
one element
is
a
But although we have
postulate different instincts
attitude yet there
it
for
each emotional
common
to
them both.
not merely that they are endowed with the general
pleasure tone of
all instincts,
but there
is
also a sensuous
AND CULTURE
INSTINCT pleasure derived from
The
bodily contact.
which a child
exercise of the drive
247
feels
active
towards
its
mother's organism consists in the permanent clinging to the mother's
body
contact, above
all
in the fullest possible epidermic
hps
in the contact of the child's
The analogy between the the sexual drive and the com-
with the mother's nipple. preparatory actions of
summatory able.
actions of the infantile impulse are remark-
The two
are to be distinguished mainly
by
their
function and by the essential difference between the
consummatory actions
What borrow has
is
in
each case.
the result of this partial similarity
from
psycho-analysis
now become
the
principle
generally accepted
that there are no experiences in later
not
stir
up
We can
?
psychology
in
life
which
which would
analogous memories from infancy. Again,
from Shand's theory
of sentiments
human
sentimental attitudes in organization
of
To
emotions.
we know
that the
Ufe entail a gradual
these
we found
it
continuity of emotional
necessary to add that the
memories and the gradual building of one attitude on the pattern of another form the main principle of sociological bonds. If
we apply
attitude
this
between
to
the formation of the sexual
lovers
we
can
see
that
the
bodily contact in sexual relations must have a very disturbing
retrospective
effect
between mother and son. The
upon
the
caresses of lovers
relation
employ
SEX AND REPRESSION
248
medium
not only the same
same
situation
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; embraces,
of personal approach
type of sensuous
;
not only the
the
cuddling,
maximum
but they entail also the same
When
feelings.
type of drive enters
memories
;
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;epidermis
it
therefore this
new
must invariably awaken the
But these
of earlier similar experiences.
memories are associated with a definite object which remains in the foreground of an individual's emotional
throughout
interests
the mother.
This object
life.
With regard
is
the person of
to this person the erotic
life
introduces disturbing memories which stand in direct contradiction to the attitude of reverence, submission
and cultural dependence which has already
in the
growing boy
completely repressed the early infantile
The new type
sentimental attachment. sensuality and the
new sexual
of
erotic
attitude blend disturb-
ingly with the memories of early
life
and threaten to
break up the organized system of emotions which has This attitude, for
been built up around the mother.
purposes of cultural education, has become less sensual,
social sentiments associated
centre of the household.
We
between the boy and
over and
how
to take place.
in practical matters,
with the mother as the
have seen already
previous chapters of this book relation
and
more and more coloured by mental and
moral dependence, by interest
by
less
how his
in the
at this stage the
mother
is
clouded
a reorganization of the sentiments has It is at this
time that strong resistances
INSTINCT arise felt
in
AND CULTURE
the individual's mind,
that
249 sensuality
all
towards the mother becomes repressed, and that
the subconscious temptation of incest arises from the
blending of early memories with
The
difference
between
new
experiences.
this explanation
and that
of
psycho-analysis consists in the fact that Freud assumes
a continuous persistence from infancy of the same In our argument
attitude towards the mother. to
show that there
early
and the
is
we
only a partial identity between the
later drives, that this identity is
essentially to the
try
mechanism
due
of sentiment formation
;
that this explains the non-existence of temptations
among animals and that the retrospective power of new sentiments in man is the cause of incestuous ;
temptations.
We
have now to ask why
man
dangerous to
although
this
it is
temptation
is
really
innocuous to animals.
We have seen that in man the development of emotions into organized sentiments
is
the very essence of social
bonds and of cultural progress. convincingly definite laws
proved, :
As Mr. Shand has
such systems are subject
they must be harmonious,
consistent with one another,
i.e.,
to
emotions
and the sentiments
so
organized that they will allow of co-operation, continuity
of
blending.
Now
within the
family the
sentiment between mother and child begins with the early sensuous attachment which binds the
two with
a deep innate interest. Later on, however, this attitude
SEX AND REPRESSION
250
has to change. The mother's function consists in educatguiding and
ing,
exercising
cultural
influence
and
As the son grows up he has
domestic authority.
to
respond to this by the attitude of submission and
During childhood, that
reverence.
is
during this
extremely long period in psychological reckoning which occurs after weaning and before maturity, emotions of reverence, dependence, respect, as well as strong attach-
ment must give the leading tone to his mother.
At that time
severing
of
tion,
all
The
father
and
physiological role
incest
The family
is
and not a
into
biological workshop.
child into
maturity
cultural
their
;
already over.
Any
would enter as a destructive element. of
the
mother with
sensual
or
would involve the disruption
temptations
her would have to be, as
all
erotic
of
the
Mating with
relationship so laboriously constructed.
mating must
be, preceded
courtship and a type of behaviour completely
incompatible reverence. is
is
into such a situation the inclination towards
approach
by
emancipa-
at this stage
and the mother are training the
independence
Now
also a process of
bodily contacts must proceed
and become completed. essentially a cultural
to the boy's relation
with
submission,
The mother, moreover,
married to another male.
Any
independence
and
not alone.
She
is
sensual temptation
would not only upset completely the son and mother but
also,
relation
indirectly,
between
that between
INSTINCT son
and
AND CULTURE Active
father.
251
would
rivalry
hostile
replace the harmonious relationship which
type
of
complete
dependence
mission to leadership.
psycho-analysts temptation,
we
that
If,
we
must
agree with the
be
a
universal
see that its dangers are not
psychological nor can they be explained
merely
by any such
hypotheses as that of Freud's primeval crime.
must be forbidden because, family and correct,
ment
its
incest
if
our analysis of the
incompatible
be
with the estabUshIn any type
of the first foundations of culture.
of civilization in
Incest
role in the formation of culture is
the
and thorough sub-
therefore,
incest
is
which custom, morals, and law would
allow incest, the family could not continue to exist.
At maturity we would witness the breaking up family, hence complete social chaos
and an impossi-
bility of continuing cultural tradition.
mean
of the
Incest would
the upsetting of age distinctions, the
mixing up
of generations, the disorganization of sentiments
a violent exchange of roles at a time is
when
the most important educational medium.
the family
No society
could exist under such conditions.
The
type of culture under which incest
excluded,
only
one consistent
with
the
is
and
alternative
existence
of
is
the
social
organization and culture.
Our type
of explanation agrees essentially
with the
view of Atkinson and Lang, which makes the prohibition of incest the primal law, although our argu-
SEX AND REPRESSION
252
ment
differs
Freud
in that
we cannot accept
differ in so far as
due to the
incest as
From Westermarck
innate behaviour of the infant.
we
We differ also from
from their hypothesis.
the aversion to incest does not
appear to us as the natural impulse, a simple tendency not to cohabit with persons living in the same house
from infancy, but rather as a complex scheme of cultural reactions.
We
have been able to deduce the necessity
of the incest taboo
from the change
endowment which must run organization and culture.
parallel
Incest, as a
instinctive
in
with
social
normal mode
behaviour, cannot exist in humanity, because
incompatible with family its
very foundations.
social
composition
instinct of sex
is
and would disorganize
The fundamental pattern
father,
aU
of
of
each
of
these
must be eliminated.
the most others.
The temptation
introduced by
sentiments
This instinct
to
incest,
by the
organized
for in all
human
necessity
of
It
is
attitudes.
societies
the most important and universal rules. the taboo of incest haunts
is
man
psycho-analysis has revealed to us.
has
therefore,
therefore, in a sense, the original sin of
must be atoned
the
the least compatible with
culture,
establishing -permanent
From
would be destroyed.
difficult to control,
been
of
bonds, the normal relation of the child to the
mother and the the
life
it
man.
This
by one
of
Even then
throughout
life,
as
X AUTHORITY AND REPRESSION
TN
previous
the
chapter
we have been mainly
interested in the relation between the
the son
;
and the
here son.
we
shall discuss that
all
On
the one hand, as results
that has been said above in Chap. IX, incest
between father and daughter
on the other, the
conflicts
is less
said about
important, while
between the mother and the
daughter are not so conspicuous.
refer
between the father
In this discussion the daughter recdves
but Uttle of our attention.
from
mother and
In any case what
is
mother and son and father and son can
with Uttle modification and on a
scale to the other set of
relations.
less
pronounced
The
cast of the
Freudian (Edipus tragedy, therefore, in which the son again figures in relation to both parents, pologically quite correct.
place Electra side
by
is
anthro-
Freud has refused even to
side with (Edipus,
and we have
to countersign this act of ostracism.
In discussing previously the relation between father
and son we have
definitely affirmed the instinctive
basis of this relationship.
The human family
of a male, as definitely as the animal family,
human
societies this biological
253
need
is
in
need
and
in all
is
expressed in the
SEX AND REPRESSION
254
principle of legitimacy which
demands a male
as the
guardian, protector, and regent of the family. It
would be
useless to speculate
upon the
role of the
animal father as a source of authority within the family.
It
seems unlikely that he should ever develop
into a t3a'ant, because as long as he to his children he
is
indispensable
presumably possesses a fund
When
tenderness and forbearance.
of natural
he ceases to be
useful to the offspring they leave him.
Under conditions however,
is
of culture the father's authority,
indispensable, because at the later stages,
when the parents and
purpose of cultural training, there
for the
for
children have to remain together
some authority to enforce order within the
is
need
family,
human
grouping.
Such grouping, based on cultural and not on
biological
as indeed within
any other form
needs, lacks perfect friction
of
and
some
instinctive
difficulties
of
adjustment, implies
and needs the
legal sanction
sort of force.
But though the father or some other male must become invested with authority role in the earlier periods in the earliest stages of is
is
at later stages, his
entirely different.
As
animal family, where the male
present to protect the pregnant and lactant femcde,
so also in the earlier stages of the
father
is
human
family the
a guard and a nurse rather than the male in
authority.
When
he shares the taboos of pregnancy
with his wife, and watches over her welfare at that
— AND CULTURE
INSTINCT
when he becomes confined during
time,
255 wife's
his
pregnancy, when he nurses the babies, his bodily force,
moral authority, his reUgious prerogative and his
his
legal
power do not come into play at
place,
as a
what he has
to do at those stages
duty and not as a prerogative.
intimate functions a
woman
—often
all.
man
In
In the
regarded
is
many
of those
has to play the part of a
somewhat undignified manner
in a
or he has to assist her in certain tasks. Yet at the
time he
is
first
same
often excluded and submitted to ridiculous
— sometimes even such —while his wife
and humiliating attitudes
regarded
by the community
performs
as
the important affairs of
In
life.
all this,
repeatedly emphasized, the father acts in willing
manner
;
he
is
usually very
we have meek and a as
happy
in
per-
forming his duties, interested in his wife's welfare,
and delighted with the small
The whole
series
correlated with
his
customs,
of
patterns imposed on the
infant.
man by
ideas
his culture
value to the family,
to behave like a loving, kind,
made
clearly
with his is
made
solicitous person,
he
because at this stage his protection, his love,
his tender emotions
guardian of his wife and
make him
into an efficient
children.
Thus here again
among human beings innate endowment among
the end of cultural behaviour is
social
to subordinate himself to his wife's organic
activities,
and
and
is
The father
utility to the species at that time.
is
and
the same as that of
SEX AND REPRESSION
256
animal species
this
:
end
to shape an attitude of
is
protective tenderness on the part of the male towards
pregnant mate and her offspring.
his
But under
conditions of culture the protective attitude has to last
much
longer
the young
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;while
placed upon the ness.
And
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;beyond
here
we
the animal and the
a
again,
initial
the biological maturity of
much
greater burden
is
instalment of emotional tender-
find the essential difference
human
between
family, for while the animal
family dissolves with the cessation of the biological
need for parental care, the After that
moment
on a process
human
family has to endure.
the family under culture has to start
of education in
which parental tenderness,
love and care are no longer sufficient. Cultural training is
not
merely the gradual development of innate
faculties.
Besides an instruction in arts and knowledge,
this training also implies the building
development of morality.
And
up
of sentimental
and customs, the
attitudes, the inculcation of laws
all
this implies
one
element which we have found already in the relation
between child and mother, the element
of
taboo,
repression, of negative imperatives. Education consists in the last instance in the building artificial
habit
responses,
of
up
the
of
complex and
organization
of
emotions into sentiments.
As we know,
this building
up takes place through
the various manifestations of public opinion and of
moral feeUng, by the constant influence of the moral
AND CULTURE
INSTINCT
pressure to which the growing child all it is
which
life
is
made up
and within which the its
ment
exposed.
Above
determined by the influence of that framework
of tribal
have
is
257
of material elements
grows up, to
child gradually
impulses moulded into a number of sentiThis process, however, requires a
patterns.
background
of effective personal authority,
and here
again the child comes to distinguish between the female side of social
who
life
and the male
side.
The women
look after him represent the nearer and more
familiar influence, domestic tenderness, the help, the rest
turn.
and the
solace to
which the child can always
The male aspect becomes gradually the
principle
of force, of distance, of pursuit of ambition
authority.
and
of
This distinction obviously develops only
after the earlier period of infancy, in which, as seen, the father
we have
and the mother play a similar
part.
Later on, though the mother, side by side with the father,
has to train and teach the child, she
still
continues the tradition of tenderness, while the father in
most cases has to supply at
a
least
minimum
of
authority within the family.
At a certain
age, however, there
comes the time at
which the male child becomes detached from the family and launches into the world.
where there are
In communities
initiation ceremonies this is
an elaborate and special
institution, in
order of law and morality
is
done by
which the new
expounded to the novice.
SEX AND REPRESSION
258
the existence of authority displayed, tribal conditions
taught and very often
hammered
into the
body by a
From
the socio-
system of privations and ordeals. logical
point of view, the initiations consist in the
weaning
boy from the domestic
of the
shelter
and sub-
mitting him to tribal authority. In cultures where there is
no
its
initiation the process is gradual
and
diffused,
The boy
elements are never absent.
is
but
gradually
allowed or encouraged to leave the house or to work himself loose
from the household influences, he
is
instructed in tribal tradition and submitted to male authority.
But the male authority the father.
works and what the
societies
of
not necessarily that of
In the earlier part of this book
how such submission in
is
it
of the
boy
means.
terminology
of
our
where the authority
shown
to paternal authority
We
reformulate
it
argument.
present is
it is
here
In
placed in the hands
the maternal uncle the father can remain the
domestic helpmate and friend of his sons. to son sentiment can develop simply
The
early infantile attitudes gradually
The
and
father
directly.
and continually
ripen with the interests of boyhood and maturity.
The father in later life plays a role not
entirely dissimilar
to that at the threshold of existence.
Authority, tribal
ambition, repressive elements and coercive measures are
associated
with
round the person
another
of the
sentiment,
centring
maternal uncle and building
AND CULTURE
INSTINCT up along
259
In the light of the
entirely different lines.
psychology of sentiment formation, and here refer to Shand's account,
it
is
I
must
obvious that such a
growth of two sentiments, each simply and internally
would
harmonious, building
up
Under
be
infinitely
of the paternal relation
than
easier
the
under father-right.
father-right the paternal role
associated
is
with two elements each of which creates considerable difficulty in the building
this
mode
up
of the sentiment.
Where
of reckoning of descent is associated with
some pronounced form
of patria potestas the father has
to adopt the position of the final arbiter in force authority.
He
has gradually
to cast off
and
the role of
tender and protective friend, and to adopt the position of strict judge,
and hard executor
This change
of law.
involves the incorporation within the sentiment of attitudes which are as diametrically opposed to one
another as the attitude of sensuous desire and reverence within the maternal sentiment.
There
perhaps, to develop this point, to show it
is
to link
up
is
no need,
how
difficult
confidence with repressive powers,
tenderness with authority, and friendship with rule, for
on
all
we have dwelt exhaustively in the the book. There also we have spoken
these
earher parts of
of the other aspect father-right,
which
is
always associated with
even where this does not imply a definite
paternal authority, for the father has always to be dispossessed
and replaced by the
son.
Even though
SEX AND REPRESSION
26o his
powers might be Hmited he
is
yet the principal
male of the older generation, represents law, duties and repressive taboos. for morality,
and
also the building
He
tribal
stands for coercion,
Here
for the limiting social forces.
up
of the relationship
upon the
initial
foundation of tenderness and effective response into
an attitude of repression Here,
however,
it
not easy.
is
All this
important
is
knowledge into our present argument
ment
of the
human
is
closed
:
place
this
in the develop-
family the relation of father to
offspring, instead of being
which
to
we know.
based on an innate response
by the departure
of the
mature
child,
has to be developed into a sentiment. The foundations of the sentiment lie in
the biologically conditioned
tenderness of paternal responses, but upon these foundations a relation of exacting, stem, coercive repression
has to be built up.
The
father has to coerce, he has to
represent the source of repressive forces, he becomes the
lawgiver within the family and the enforcing agent of Patria potestas converts
the tribal rules.
him from a
tender and loving guardian of infancy into a powerful
and often dreaded autocrat.
The
constitution of the
sentiment into which such contradictory emotions enter must therefore he difficult. this contradictory
indispensable for
And
yet
it
is
just
combination of elements which
human
culture.
For the father
the earlier stages the biologically indispensable of the family, his function
is
is
is
at
member
to protect the offspring.
AND CULTURE
INSTINCT
This natural endowment of tenderness
is
261
the capital
upon which the family can draw in order to keep interested
has to
and attached to
make
it.
But
here, again, culture
use of this emotional attitude, in imposing
functions of an entirely different type
within
grow up, education, cohesion
the sons,
the
upon him as the
For as the children,
eldest male within the family.
especially
him
and
family,
demand
co-operation
the
existence of a personal authority which stands for the
enforcement of order within the family and for the
The
conformation to tribal law outside. position of the father
is,
as
we can
see,
difficult
not the result
merely of male jealousy, of the ill-tempers of an older
man and
of his sexual envy, as
most psycho-analytic writings essential character of the
undertake two tasks of the species
and
it
:
it
seems to be implied in ;
human
it
deep and
family which has to
has to carry on propagation
has to insure the continuity of
culture.
The paternal sentiment with
the
protective, the other coercive,
first
a
is
its is
two phases, the inevit-
able correlate of the dual function in the family.
complex,
the
ambivalent tenderness
between son and growth is
human
The essential attitudes within the (Edipus founded
in the
from nature into culture.
There
father, are directly
of the family
and repulsion
no need for an ad hoc hypothesis in order to explain
these features.
We
can see them emerging from the
very constitution of the
human
family.
SEX AND REPRESSION
262
There
is
only one
way
of
avoiding the dangers
which surround the paternal relation and associate the typical elements
this is to
which enter into the
paternal relation with two different people. This configuration which
we
find under mother-right.
is
the
XI
FATHER-RIGHT AND MOTHER-RIGHT
TT TE
are
now
in a position to
approach the vexed
problem of paternal and maternal descent, it is
more
or,
as
crisply but less precisely called, father-right
and mother-right; Once
we
explicitly
state
that
the
expressions
" mother-right " and " father-right " do not imply the existence of authority or power,
we can
them
use
without danger as being more elegant than matriliny
and patrihny,
The questions principles are:
what
to which terms they
are equivalent
usually asked with regard to these two
which of them
is
more "primitive",
are the " origins " of either, were there definite
" stages " of matriliny
Most theories
and patrihny
of matriliny
?
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;and
so on.
aimed at associating
this
institution with the early existence of promiscuity,
the resulting uncertainty of fatherhood and thus with the need of counting kinship through females. ^ variations
on the
many volumes on
theme pater semper
incertus
The fill
primitive morality, kinship, and
mother-right. ^
See
e.g.
E. S. Hartland, Primitive Society, 1921, pp. 2, 32, and
passim.
263
SEX AND REPRESSION
264
As often happens, the
criticism
which has to be
most theories and hypotheses must
directed against
and the formula-
start with a definition of the concept
tion of the problem.
Most theories imply that father-
and mother-right are mutually exclusive
right
alter-
Most hypotheses place one of these alternatives
natives.
at the beginning, the other at a later stage of culture.
Mr.
Hartland, for instance, one of the greatest
S.
speaks of society "
" the {op.
p.
cit.,
runs
throughout In
a self-contained
controlling
which
social
aspects
all
this writer
of
it
work
The task is
" that the earliest ascertainable systematic
and that
patrilineal reckoning
"
ment
(p.
10).
is
through the is
this
embracing and
has put before himself
kinship
of
organization.
human
This
".
see mother-right
system,
deriving
are
kinship
mother
the
we
under
that
affirms
the
sociology,
foundation of
sole
and therefore
eminent anthropologist. as
and
2)
through
exclusively
conception
primitive
mother as the
mother-right " descent traced
on
authorities
anthropological
to prove
method
woman
of
only,
a subsequent develop-
Remarkably enough, however,
through Mr. Hartland's work, in which he
right
tries
to
prove the priority of matrilineal over patrilineal descent,
we encounter
invariably
one
statement
always a mixture of mother-right and
:
there
father-right.
is
In
a summarizing statement indeed, Mr. Hartland says that
:
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; " Patriarchal
rule
and
patrilineal kinship
have
AND CULTURE
INSTINCT made world in
perpetual inroads upon mother-right ;
all
stages of transition to a state of society in
which the fMher "
over the
consequently matrilineal institutions are found
almost
ment
all
265
(p.
is
the centre of kinship and govern-
As a matter
34).
of
fact,
the correct
we
statement would be that in
all
parts of the world
find maternal kinship side
by
side with institutions
and we
of paternal authority,
find the
two modes
of
linking descent inextricably mingled.
The question
whether
arises
is
it
at aU necessary origins "
and
" successive stages " in the counting of descent
and
to invent
any
hypotheses about "
first
then to have to maintain that from the lowest to the highest types of society humanity lives in a transitional state.
It
seems that the empirical conclusion would
rather be that motherhood and fatherhood are never
found independent of each other. inquiry indicated
by the
facts
would be
ask the question whether there matriliny
independent
of
The
is
paternal
logical line of first
of all to
such a thing as reckoning
and
whether perhaps the two types of counting descent are not
complementary to each other rather than
antithetic. E. B. Tylor
and W. H. R. Rivers had already
seen this line of approach and Rivers, for instance, splits
up mother-right and
father-right into three in-
dependent principles of counting
and
succession.
The
:
descent, inheritance
best treatment of the subject,
however, we owe to Dr. Lowie,
who has brought
order
SEX AND REPRESSION
266
problem and has also introduced the very
into the efficient
terminology of
The organization principle.
bilateral
of the family
The organization
and
placed on the bilateral
is
of a clan
shows that, since the family
both
associated with
a universal unit and since
is
universally counted equally far on
are
sides, it is
is
Lowie ^ very clearly
the unilateral kinship reckoning.
genealogies
unilateral kinship.
nothing short of preposterous to speak
about the purely matrilineal or patrilineal society. This position is entirely unassailable. Equally importan t is
He
Lowie's theory of the clan.
has shown that in a
society where in certain respects the one side of kinship is
emphasized there will
arise
groups of extended kindred
corresponding to one or other of the sib or clan organizations of mankind. will
It
be well perhaps
to
supplement
Lowie's
argument and to explain why unilateral emphasis has to be placed on the counting of certain relations, in
what respects
this is done,
human
and what are
the mechanisms of unilateral kinship reckoning.
We
have seen that
child, kinship
very
is
the
of
the
binding starting
which the
vitally essential
has to be counted on both
institution
both parents, tie,
in all the matters in
and the mother are
father
family,
the point
child of
sides.
involving
with
to
a
bilateral
the
The
always two-fold kinship
^ R. H. Lowie, Primitive Society, chapters on the " Family ", " Kinship ", and the " Sib ".
AND CULTURE
INSTINCT reckoning.
If
we
moment between
distinguish for a
the sociological reality of native
can see that kinship
is
and the doctrines
life
by the
of kinship reckoning entered into
267
counted on both sides at the
earhest stages of the individual's
Even
life.
As
roles are neither identical nor symmetrical.
advances, the
an
relation
sociological
perative â&#x20AC;&#x201D;^which, its
own
in
counting
other
words,
doctrine of kinship.
of education, as
we have
life
between the child and his
make
changes and conditions arise which
explicit
frame
there,
though both parents are relevant, their
however,
parents
we
natives,
im-
kinship
of
society
force
The
to
latter stages
seen, consist in the
handing
over of material possessions and of the tradition of
They
knowledge and art associated with them.
consist also in the teaching of social attitudes, obliga-
tions
with
and prerogatives, which are associated
succession to dignity and rank.
The transmission
of
material goods, moral values, and personal prerogatives
has two sides
it
;
is
a burden on the parent
who
always has to teach, to exert himself, to work patiently
upon the novice
;
side of valuables,
Thus,
for
culture
it is
also a surrender
possessions
both reasons, the
on the parents'
and exclusive lineal
rights.
transmission of
from one generation to another has to be
based upon a strong emotional foundation.
It
must
take place between individuals united by strong senti-
ments
of love
and
affection.
As we know,
society can
SEX AND REPRESSION
268
for such sentiments
draw upon only one source biological
endowment
of parental tendencies.
transmission of culture in
all
these aspects
is
â&#x20AC;&#x201D; the
Hence,
invariably
associated with the biological relation of parent to child, it
always takes place within the family.
not enough, however. of
There are
still
This
is
the possibilities
paternal transmission, maternal transmission, or
else
transmission in both
a process which in
This latter can be shown
lines.
to be the least satisfactory itself
it
:
is
would introduce into
surrounded with
perils,
complications, and psychological dangers, an element of ambiguity
and confusion.
The individual would
always have the choice of belonging to two groups could always claim possessions from two sources
;
;
he he
would always have two alternatives and a double status. Reciprocally, a
and
man
could always leave his position
his social identity to
one of two claimants.
This
type of society would introduce a perpetual source of strife, of difficulty, of conflict,
at first sight,
it
and as must be
would create an intolerable
clear
situation.
we find our conclusion fully confirmed that in no human society are descent, succession and inheritance left undetermined. Even in such comIndeed,
munities as those of Polynesia, where an individual
can follow his maternal or paternal he must make his choice early kinship
is
in
line alternatively,
life.
not an accidental principle.
Thus It
unilateral
cannot be
" explained " as due to ideas of paternity, or to this
AND CULTURE
INSTINCT or
feature
that
organization.
the
onl}'^
with the problems of
and
dignities,
psychology or social
primitive
of
It is
way
possible
transmission
of
of
deahng
possessions,
As we
privileges.
social
269
shall
see,
however, this does not preclude a number of complications,
There
reactions.
right
phenomena
supplementary
and
is
still
and
secondary
the choice between mother-
father-right.
Let us have a closer look at the working of the principle of maternal
and paternal kinship. As we know,
the organization of emotions within the sentiment is
closely correlated with the organization of society.
we
In the formation of the maternal sentiment, as followed as
it
in detail in the first part of the
we summarized
it
in
one of the
book and
last chapters,
we
are
not able to see any deep disturbance by the change
from the early tenderness to the exercise of authority.
Under mother-right
it
is
not the mother
coercive powers but her brother,
who
wields
and succession does
not introduce any antagonisms and jealousies between the mother and her son, for here again he inherits
only from her brother.
At the same time the bond
of
personal affection and tenderness between the mother
and the
child
influences
to
is,
the
in spite of all cultural
contrary,
the father and the child.
stronger
Nor
is
social
there any reason to
deny that the obvious physical nature
may have
and
than between
of
motherhood
greatly contributed towards the emphasis
SEX AND REPRESSION
270
between offspring and mother.
of the bodily identity
Thus, while in the maternal
the ideas about pro-
tie
creation, the tender feelings of infancy, the stronger
emotional
ties
between mother and child would lead to
a more powerful sentiment, this sentiment
is
in
no way
disturbed by the burden of legal and economic trans-
mission which
it
entails.
In other words, under mother-
right the social decree that the son has to inherit
way
the mother's brother in no to the mother
and on the whole
that this relation
is
from
spoils the relation
expresses the fact
it
empirically
more obvious and
we have
seen in the detailed
emotionally stronger. As
discussion of the institutions of one matrilineal society,
the mother's brother, social ideals
who
represents stern authority,
and ambitions,
is
a distance outside the family
very suitably kept at
circle.
Father-right, on the other hand, entails, as
we have
seen in detail in the last chapter, a definite break within
the formation of the sentiment.
In the patrilineal
society the father has to incorporate in himself the aspects, that of tender friend
and
rigid
two
guardian of law
This creates both a disharmony within the sentiment,
and
social difficulties within the family
co-operation and
by
creating jealousies
by disturbing and
rivalries
at its very heart.
One more
point
may
be mentioned.
Even more
in
primitive communities than in civilized societies, kinship
dominates the regulation of sexual attitudes.
AND CULTURE
INSTINCT The extension in
many
of kinship
beyond the family implies
exogamy
societies the formation of
side with the formation of clans.
course within
by
in a simple
is
into the prohibition of sexual inter-
the
the
therefore,
side
Under mother-right,
the prohibition of incest within the family
manner extended
271
clan.
building
attitude towards
all
In
up
a of
women
matrilineal
general
the
of the
society,
sexual
community
continuously harmonious and simple process.
is
a
In a
patriarchal society, on the other hand, the rules of incest
which apply to the members of the family are
not simply extended to the clan but a ideas of the sexually
licit
and
new scheme
of
has to be built up.
illicit
Patrilineal exogamj'^ does not include the one person
with
whom
incest should be
the mother.
In
most rigorously avoided,
we see a series
of reasons
that
is
why
mother-right might be considered a more useful
principle
The
of
all this
than
organization
social
utility is obviously associated
human
father-right.
with that level of
paramount
organization where kinship plays a
sociological part in its
narrower as well
as in its
classificatory form. It is clearly
important to realize that father-right
also presents considerable advantages.
right there
child
is
Under mother-
always a double authority over the
and the family
itself is cleft.
complex cross-system
There develops that
of relationship
societies increases the
which
in primitive
strength of social texture but
SEX AND REPRESSION
272
which
in higher societies
of clan
and
would introduce innumerable
As culture advances,
complications.
as the institutions
classificatory kinship disappear,
organization of the local
become
state has to
right naturally
community
as the
of tribe, city,
and
simpler, the principle of father-
But
becomes dominant.
this brings
us out of our special line of inquiry.
To sum up, we have of mother-right
and that to
occurrence.
father-right
well balanced
are
would probably be impossible
it
either
and
seen that the relative advantages
of
them a general
The advantage
priority
or
to
assign
a
wider
of the unilateral as against
the bilateral principle of kinship counting in legal,
economic and
doubt and
social matters,
however,
is
beyond any
cavil.
The most important point
is
to realize that neither
mother-right nor father-right can ever be an exclusive rule of counting kinship or descent.
It is
only in the
transmission of tangible values of a material, moral or social nature that
one of the two principles becomes
legally emphasized.
As
I
have
tried to
show on other
occasions,^ such a legal emphasis brings with
it
certain
customary traditional reactions which tend to a certain extent to obliterate
its
one-sided working.
Returning once more to our starting-point, that of the criticism expressed ^
by Dr. Jones on the conclusions
Crime and Custom in Savage
of 6th February, 1926
;
and
Society, 1926
article of
;
Nature, supplement
15th August. 1925.
[NSTINCT
AND CULTURE
reached in the previous parts of the book,
273
can now
it
be seen that the appearance of mother-right
mysterious phenomenon brought about by social
and economic reasons
of the
two alternatives
".
right are perhaps
father-right.
is
not a
unknown
Mother-right
of counting
which shows certain advantages.
"
is
one
kinship, both of
Those
of
mother-
on the whole greater than those of
And among them unquestionably we
have to mention the central point which has been brought out
in this
chapter
:
the value which
it
has
in eliminating the strong repressions in the paternal
sentiment and in placing the mother in a more consistent
and better adapted
position within the
of sexual prohibitions in the
community.
scheme
XII
CULTURE AND THE "COMPLEX" T T 7E have now change
covered the
in instinctive
field of
our subject
endowment
our
We
results.
We
started with psycho-analytic views on
came upon a number elements
;
can briefly
and summarize
the origins and history of the complex.
The concept
the
correlated with
the transition from nature to culture. indicate the course of our argument
:
of obscurities
the
of
and
In this
we
inconsistencies.
repression of already repressed
the theory that ignorance and matriliny were
devised as
means
father-right
the family
is ;
a
of deflecting hatred
happy
were
all
solution of
difficult
to
the idea that
;
most
difficulties in
reconcile with
the
general doctrine of psycho-analysis as well as with
fundamental anthropological facts and
was found also that
all
principles.
from the view that the CEdipus complex cause of culture, that
it is
is
the primal
something which preceded
and produced most human beliefs.
It
these inconsistencies result
institutions,
ideas,
and
In attempting to find in what concrete form
this primordial CEdipus
complex has originated accord-
ing to psycho-analytic theory,
we came upon Freud's
hypothesis of the " primeval crime 274
".
Freud regards
AND CULTURE
INSTINCT
275
culture as a spontaneously generated reaction to the
crime and he assumes that the
memory
of the crime,
the repentance and the ambivalent attitude have
survived in a
Our
utter
'
Collective Unconscious
incapacity
forced us to examine
it
accept
to
more
'.
this
hypothesis
We
found that
closely.
the totemic crime must be imagined as a dividing
event between nature and culture
Without
beginning.
cultural
as the
moment
of
assumption the
this
With
hypothesis has no meaning. falls to pieces
;
the hypothesis
it
because of the inconsistencies involved.
Having found that
in
Freud's hypothesis as in
all
other speculations on the early form of the family,
the capital mistake
is
made
of ignoring the difference
between instinct and habit, between the biologically defined
became our task ties
and
reaction
the
cultural
adjustment,
it
to study the transformation of family
due to the passage from nature to
culture.
We attempted to ascertain the essential modification innate
in
endowment and
consequences of of this
we
it
to
naturally
human
to
show what were the
mentality.
In the course
came upon the most important
psycho-analytic problems, and
we were
able to offer a
theory of the natural formation of the family complex.
We
found the complex as an inevitable by-product of
culture,
which
arises as the family develops
group bound by instincts into one which
by
cultural ties.
is
from a
connected
Psychologically speaking, this change
SEX AND REPRESSION
276
means that a cohesion by a chain
of
Unked drives
is
transformed into a system of organized sentiments.
The
up
building
of
sentiments obeys a number of
psychological laws which guide the mental ripening so as to eliminate a
of attitudes, adjustments,
from a given sentiment. The mechanism
and
instincts
of
we found in
it
number
the influence of the social environment,
working through the cultural framework and through direct personal contacts.
The
process of elimination
and impulses from the child
of
relation
certain
attitudes
between father and
and mother and child present a considerable
range of
The systematic organization
possibilities.
may
impulses and emotions
drawing
off
and waning from certain
dramatic shocks, by organized monials,
by
mechanisms we
by
attitudes,
ideals, as in the cere-
and public opinion.
ridicule,
of
be carried out by a gradual
find, for instance,
By
such
that sensuality
gradually eliminated from the child's relation to
is
its
mother, while often tenderness between father and child
is
way
in
replaced
by a
stern
and coercive
relation.
The
which these mechanisms operate does not
lead to exactly the
same
results.
ments within the mind and back to the
And many
in society
faulty cultural
maladjust-
can be traced
mechanism by which
sexuality
is
suppressed and regulated or by which
authority
is
imposed.
great detail in a small
we have presented with number of concrete cases in
This
AND CULTURE
INSTINCT the
first
277
This again has been
two parts of the book.
theoretically justified in this last part.
Thus the building up
of the sentiments, the conflicts
and maladjustments which
this impHes,
depend largely
mechanism which works in a given
upon the
sociological
society.
The main aspects
of this
mechanism are the
regulation of infantile sexuality,
the incest taboos,
the apportionment of authority and the
exogamy,
In this perhaps
type of household organization.
lies
We have
the main contribution of the present memoir.
been able to indicate the relation between biological,
and
psychological
sociological
We
factors.
have
developed a theory of the plasticity of instincts under
and
culture
of
transformation
the
response into cultural adjustment.
our theory
logical side
instinctive
of
On
its
psycho-
approach
suggests a line of
which, while giving fuU due to the influence of social factors,
mind
does
away with the hypotheses
the
" collective
",
instinct ",
In
all
we
are constantly dealing with the central
of psj^cho-analysis, the
problems of
of paternal authority, of the sexual taboo
ripening of the instinct.
analysts on
several
points,
of serious revision
question
of
the
incest,
and
of the
In fact the results of
argument confirm the general teachings
need
"group
of
" gregarious
and similar metaphysical conceptions.
this
problems
unconscious
",
of
my
psycho-
though they imply
the
on others. Even on the concrete
influence
of
mother-right
and
its
SEX AND REPRESSION
278
have pubHshed previously
function, the results which I
and
book are not
the conclusions of this
entirely sub-
versive of psycho-analytic doctrine. Mother-right, as has
been remarked, possesses an additional advantage over father-right in that
" splits the (Edipus complex ",
it
dividing the authority between two males, while on
the other hand
introduces a consistent scheme of
it
incest prohibition in
which exogamy follows directly
We
from the sexual taboo within the household. to
recognize,
however,
altogether dependent
that
mother-right
not
is
upon the complex, that
had
it
is
a
wider phenomenon determined by a variety of causes.
These
I
have tried to state concretely
Dr. Jones's objection that for
unknown
sociological
I
assume
this
appearance
and economic reasons.
tried to
show that mother-right can be made
as the
more
The
reckoning kinship.
mode
real point, as
cultural level the maternal line
shows
I
the " complex
should
complex
all,
to
distinct
its
as
that
advantage
power to modify
".
add that from the point
psycho-analytic theory
the
is
adopted
Among these signal characteristic
advantages of mother-right we find split
we saw,
of
but that among peoples of low
in almost all cultures
and
intelligible
of counting relationship is
over the paternal one.
have
I
two alternative forms
useful of the
the unilateral
meet
in order to
such
it
is
difficult to
should
a psycho-analyst,
the
of
explain
be harmful. (Edipus
view of
why After
complex
is
AND CULTURE
INSTINCT the
fons
rehgion,
law,
any need
means is
to
of
remove
to break
it
up
To
?
"
Why should Why should have
us,
of
there be
humanity
" devised "
any
however, the complex
not a cause but a by-product, not a creative principle
but a maladjustment. a
it ?
mind
beginning
the
culture,
and morality.
" collective
the
or
origo
et
279
This maladjustment assumes
harmful form under mother-right than under
less
father-right.
These conclusions were
first set
forth in
two
articles
which appeared separately a few years ago and are now reprinted as Part
One and Two
Here
of this volume.
again in dealing with the general problem,
we have
found certain confirmations of psycho-analytic theory, if
this
be taken as an inspiration and a working
hypothesis and not as a system of dogmatic tenets. research consists in collaboration,
Scientific
give
and take
between various
in
a
The
specialists.
anthropologist has received some help from the psychoanalytic school and
it
would be a great pity
if
exponents of this latter refused to collaborate, accept what after
all,
science line.
is
offered in
good
faith
where,
never a matter of simple progress in a direct
is
new domain,
pegged out on which the barren
school
field
to
they cannot be at home. The advancement of
In the conquest of a
return.
from a
the
It
to
is
claims are often
soil will
never yield a
as important for a student or for a
be able to withdraw from an untenable
SEX AND REPRESSION
28o
position as to pioneer ahead into
And, after scientific
all,
it
new fields
of discovery.
should ever be remembered that in
prospecting the few grains of golden truth
can only be
won by
rejection of a
mass
the patient washing out and
of useless pebbles
and sand.
—
——
—
— —
INDEX Adolescence
Adoption
:
134 123. structure,
17 rare in Trobriands, :
21 maternal, 18, 26, Affection 207-8, 269 paternal, 31-2, ;
Ambivalence
79, 80, 154, 261 of savages, 138 neurotic, Amphlett Islanders :
;
:
86-88
perversions, 90
;
Anal-eroticism
Animal
life
35
:
n., 39, 51,
54
Atkinson, J. J. 149, 251 Authority in family v. Father, Mother's brother :
:
Babyhood Birth:
16. 18
:
18-19,
trauma Boas. F.
209. 215;
207,
22 dream 157 n.
of.
:
;
of,
:
:
'
'
:
;
148-151,159.
:
193 n,
and indecent ', 33-6, 38-9, 77, 235 D'Entrecasteaux Islanders 87. '
Decent
'
'
:
90. 115
n.
people's
Descent
—
Father-right.
v.
Mother -right. Family. Kinship Dewey, J. 157 n.
45
:
mythical origin in Trobriands, 115 Childhood Pt. i, ch. vi and vii periods of, 15-17 v. also :
:
;
Games, Sexuality, etc. Children's communities 55-6 Clan
:
45-8, 271,
Exogamy Co-habitation lations
—
:
212— v.
41,
Discipline absence briands, 27, 41
—
Divorce
:
Dream
also
Tro-
in
231
Dokonikan
Tudava
v.
fantasies
:
91
;
at
puberty, 63, 80 Dreams 92-7, 144 of death, 101 and magic, 125 V. also Kirisala Durkheim. E. 157 n.
—
:
;
—
;
:
v.
Sexual
re-
—
Economics of marriage 238 Education in family: 218-21, 234-5. 256, 267-8 Electra complex 65. 252 :
Complex of family, 2, 183 and myth, 5, Pt. ii. ch. :
and
;
:
Cannibalism
158;
—
:
Darwin. Charles
:
:
;
275-9—u.
;
33 (young
house) 67 Butura (fame)
279
173-8,
95
murder of, 101-2; —in myth, 114-15, 119-20; relations between brothers,
Bukumatula
social
143,
also Nuclear complex. Qidipus complex. Repression Co-operation: 219-20,237-8 Courtship in animals, 193 in man. 196-7, 225, 227 Couvade 215-16 Crawley. E. 157 n.. 194 Crime: 91. 100-2 Cross-cousin marriage: 114 Culture origin of, 148-58 nature of, 157-8, 165-7,236-9; behaviour in, 180, 227-8 v. also Emotion, Instinct, Sentiment, Family
Brother:
120-1 Buhler, Charlotte
and
:
Family
v.
139, 144,
nature of, sentiment,
:
211-12, 214-16, 254-6
—
;
i
;
;
matrilineal. 80-1, 83, 85, 120,
281
:
— —— —
—
INDEX
282 Havelock
Ellis,
196
194,
33
:
193
n.,
n..
n.
Embarrassment
puberty
at
:
60-1, 63
Frazer, Sir
G.
J.
:
;
;
;
;
;
ment
104 Totem and 168 Cyclopean family, 149-152, 158-60, 164 totemism and beginnings of culture, 149-59, 162, 167, 274 folk-lore,
Endopsychic censor 242 Excrement, cursing by 104
Taboo,
:
:
Excretion, interest in 51-2. 77 79,
:
;
;
155-172 incest, 244-6, 249, 252
234,
195;
breach
—
;
148,
;
34, 38,
:
96,
242, 271, 277-8; V. Suvasova
critique
of,
of,
Games, sexual, Family in psycho-analysis, 2-7; comparison of savage and 8-14,
civilized,
—
;
74-82
19-32,
;
Genital,
160, 164 among anthropoids, 150-1, 159-62, 163 among as compared with animals, summary, 225-8 fundamental constitution of, 192 importance in culture, 184-5, 221-3, 239; ties, ;
of children
9,
:
interest
35
:
n.,
39,
55-6
75-8.
complex, 2, 8, 15, Cyclopean, 149, 158,
on
;
55-7
:
80
194
n.,
;
Emotions and culture 236-7, 276-7 organization in 230-3 marriage, v. also Senti-
Exogamy
157
:
Freud, S.: 1, 6, 15 n., 35, 157 n., modification of 172, 241-2 his theory of complex, 81-2 sex latency period, 49-51, 78 theory of neurosis, 86, 89-90 of dreams, 92^, 124 of
157.n. Ginsberg, M. Gregariousness v. Herd Instinct Gwayluwa (mania) 87 :
:
;
man
;
;
238-9—
218-24,
—
Hartland, E.
Herd
Fatherhood, Instinct, Marriage, Sentiment Father: in Trobriands, 9-11; in Europe, 27-9 compared, 12,
;
;
;
38, 43,
;
temptations, 80, 83, 139, 183,
myth
Affection,
also
Family Fatherhood social nature 214-17 23, ignorance :
;
physiological, 137-46, 171
109,
9,
;
myth
of
of 145, :
115
:
:
5
n.,
also
:
;
:
16 Infantile sexuality v. Sexuality of children none 257-8 Initiation 17, in Trobriands, 59-60 defined, 161, 186, 245 ; Instinct :
;
— and custom. 22 — modi:
16 n.
Folk-lore and psycho-analysis
104— v.
'
category created by 71, 77 Decent elders, 52 v. also Infancy period of development, '
262-73 Fliigel, J. C.
'
'
of,
Father-right and mother-right Fire,
in myth, 224, Pt. iv, ch. ix biology of 126-9, 134 incestous unions, 243-4 33-6, 38-9, 51-5, Indecent ;
;
Trobriand
in
;
;
;
109-10— y.
:
73,
;
absent
264 185-
:
father-daughter, 65-6, brother-sister, 84, 100 mother-son, 24596-9, 132 last absent in 52, 271, 277 incestous 100 Trobriands, 95-7 incestous dreams.
Incest
65-6, 72-3, 76 and son, 37-8, 43, 61. 68-9, 80, 253-62 120-1 authoritv, 42-4, 183, 220, 224, 254, 257-62
gifts,
n.,
157 n. Perversion
:
;
—
263
92, 222 Hobhouse, L. T. Homosexuality v.
12-13, 23-4, 29-32, 42-4, 76-7;
and daughter,
:
disproved
also
t;.
Emotions,
—
S.
instinct,
Myth
;
:
under culture. 182, 184, 192, 199-200, 203-6, 225-8;
fied
—
— —
—
—
INDEX strengthened bv culture, 210, 212, 214-15, 216-17—1;. also
Herd
Sentiment
instinct,
Jealousy
nephew,
uncle and
:
79, 83, 103 :
153,
Mother,
etc.
101
magical dream, 128 157 n., 167, 172 Kroeber, A. L. magic, dreams, 93-4 Kula 130 magic, 112 Kwoygapani :
of
98
:
49 Morals 182, 256-7 Morgan, L. H. 222 Mother and son, 33
:
n.,
36, 38, 62, 80, 220, 245-52, 269-70 [v. and daughter, also Incest) 36, 65 in savage and Motherhood society compared, civilized :
;
—
19-23, 25-7 102 Mother-right 137-140, 145-7.
and
9-10, 13, brother 44-7, 69, 79, 100, 113, 116, 120-1, 258-9 V. also Tudava classifica108-34 interpretation 108 of flying canoe, of, 116; 118-22 of salvage magic, 122-3 of love magic. 126-9 and ritual, 133 v. also Fire, Magic, Tudava
:
'
:
—
;
;
magical filiation, 117-134; 129-131 V. also Kwoygapani, Waygxgi Mailu neurasthenics in, 88-9 :
clan, and incest, 97 Malasi Marett, R. R. 157 n. in Trobriands, 9-12, Marriage 201-2. animal, 204; 45; human, 202-6, 225-8, 230 156-8 psyclie Mass 180-2, 190-1 Material culture :
:
:
'
:
— — —
;
;
;
:
;
;
of,
;
:
;
:
6,
:
tion
Legitimacy, postulate of 212-14 1, 33, 245 Libido 157 n., 184 n., Lowie, R. H. 243 n., 265-6 108 Lugiita (sister)
Magic: 93, 108, 117; black, love, 84, 93, 123-9. 87-8, 101 132-3 suvasova, 99 130, and myth, shipwreck, 122
V.
Mother's
Myth
:
;
father-right, also Matriliny
xi
:
Lang, Andrew: 157 n., 251 180, 182, 189-90 Language
origin ', 171. 278; Pt. iv, ch. '
:
;
'
98
and native morality,
:
Mokadayu, story
:
:
'
88,
:
Father,
also
t;.
Kinsmen: 47-8, Kirisala
:
131-2
:
:
—
278—
272,
(spiritualistic)
Miracle Missions 90
:
Mother's brother Kayro'iwo v. Magic of love Kinship: 47, 69 n., 159; bilateral and unilateral, 266-9, v.
Medium
Moll, A.
6, 136-47, Jones, Ernest 158, 162-3. 272-3, 278
Kada —
283
Nagowa (mental disorder) Nakedness
:
taboo
no
:
87 in
Melanesia, 55
Neurosis
among
:
Melanesians,
interpretation of, 170 85-90 4. 75, 137, Nuclear complex 173-8 varies with social with constitustrata, 14-15 ;
'
'
:
;
;
tion of family, 81-2, 142 Jones's view of. 137 v. also ;
Complex Nursing of child: 208, 245-7
20-21.
23,
:
Maternal instinct 160,
18, 20, 22, also Affection 197, 225, 228, 230
Mating Matrihny and :
—
:
207-8—y. :
4,
9,
75-6,
myth,
103
;
108-17—w.
also Mother-right
Matrimonial response 175 McDougall, W. :
104-7 Obscenity CEdipus complex :
2, 5, 6, 65, 78, 80, 83, 135, 182, 245, 252. product of a 261, 274, 278-9 :
;
75, 5, patriarchal society, assimilation 173 167-70, assumed univerof, 168-9 sality, 137-48, 158, 162-3, 171 ;
:
202, 211
;
— —
—
—— —
—
—
INDEX
284 Parental love
207-8
IW»,
Parricide
:
;
102
:
among
—
in
Robertson Smith,
animals,
Rut
man, 208
194
:
\V.
148-9
:
197-8. 201
5.
primeval, 152,
;
critique 251, 274 Paternity: biological foundation of, 207, 210-15; cultural reinforcement of, 215-17 V. also
Selective mating
F~atherhood Father, postestas r. authority 168-70 Patriarchy Peasant family 29, 14. 17, 34,;J7, 41,43, 51-4, 64 Perversions rare in Trobriands, 57, 90 v. Physiological fatherhood
Sex confidences 36 n. Sex latency period 49-55,
Pt.
ch. iv
iii,
and v
;
Sentiment
of. 172,
:
V.
n.,
184
:
:
n.,
:
;
Plasticity of instincts 200, 206, 216, 223, 236-7, 277, Pt. iv, ch. vii V. also Instinct :
Ploss-Renz 33 n. 120 Pokala (pavment) Pregnancy': 19-21, 204, 208-9, 210-12, 214— j;. also Taboo Primal horde v. Family, Cyclo:
:
pean Property in magic, 120-1, 125, 128-9 relation to Psycho-analysis biology and sociology, 1, 135 to anthropology, 6-7, 116, 136, 140-1,279-80; —and family, :
:
;
—and 241-2 Puberty
81
;
— and myth,
134
:
:
;
143 Social organization also Family, Clan
Speech
:
v.
Language
v. :
:
268-9 v. also KinSuccession ship 245-7 Suckling Sidumwoya (love magic) 125-8 Suvasova (breach of exogamy) :
:
:
99-100
;
;
;
Rank, Dr O.
6, 22 Repression 38-9, 71-2, 80-3, 241-2, 273 and neurosis, 89 and dreams, 91-3 104-7 and abuse, and myth, 110 of knowledge of paternity, 137-8, 144-7 - and the complex, 143-6, 171. 174-5 Rivers, W. H. R. 265 :
:
—
221-3
:
Stern, W. 33 n. Stout, G. F. 175
73, 96,
59-73 of civilized 60-4 of civilized girl, 64-6 in Trobriands, 66-73
—
246-8 36-7 Sexual rivalry Shand, A. F. 2, 175-8, 240-2, 247, 249, 259 Obscenity, Sister— v. Incest, etc. substitute for mother,
:
;
theory of A. F. Shand,
boy,
;
Games :
n.
2, 75,
also
Sexual desire in marriage, 233 Sexual dreams 95-7 Sexual impulse 193-8; control of, 199-200 Sexual relations 195-6, 30, 200-6, 230-4 and mother,
Fatherhood 22
58,
:
—
:
also Instinct,
78 Sexuality of children 9, 33, 35, 49-50, 55-8, 77, 86, 277—
:
G.
v.
191,
260-1,
:
:
243
248-50,
Pt.iv, ch.viii
:
Pitt-Rivers,
176-8,
Complex
—
Patria
240-2,
205,
Mating
v.
75,
2,
:
;
;
—
—
;
—
;
;
:
Taboo
:
79, 83,
133, 2561;
128,
brother and sister, 12, 46, 57_8, 70-2, 79 ;— of birth, 19, 22 of pregnancv, 21, 209, sex, 47^ 77, 100, 215, 254
—
;
;
226 200. 199, incest, 79, 252. 277 origin of, 148, 155 47-8 Tomakava (stranger) 162-3, Totemism 155. 148, totemic Pt. iii, ch. iii-iv sacrament, 149, 152, 165 165,
195,
;
exogamv, 79
;
;
:
:
;
Tradition
:
219, 227, 236
â&#x20AC;&#x201D;
INDEX Tudava, myth
of
Tylor. E.
265
li.
:
111-14
:
Veyola-
285 ~v
magic
Wayi^igi,
(younp man) maternal Uncle Vlatile
:
:
v.
66 Mother's
brother; substitute for father, 143
Unconscious clement 174-5. 182
in
complex
sunshine
Weaning
Kmsnirn
.
:
of rain 130, 133 23, 25-6
and
:
157 11., 175. Westerniarck, E. 194, 196 n., 212 n.. 243 n .244. 252 122 Witches, flying :
;
The
^K
International Library OF
PSYCHOLOGY, PHILOSOPHY
AND
SCIENTIFIC
¥
METHOD
Edited by
C. K.
OGDEN,
Magdalene
College,
M.A.
Cambridge
The
International Library, of which over one hundred and thirty volumes have now been published, is both in quality and quantity a Its purpose unique achievement in this department of publishing. is to give expression, in a convenient form and at a moderate price, to the remarkable developments which have recently occurred in Psychology and its allied sciences. The older philosophers were preoccupied by metaphysical interests which for the most part have ceased to attract the younger investigators, and their forbidding
terminology too often acted as a deterrent for the general reader. The attempt to deal in clear language with current tendencies whether in England and America or on the Continent has met with a very encouraging reception, and not only have accepted authorities been invited to explain the newer theories, but it has been found possible to include a
number of original contributions of high
merit.
^
^
Published by
KEG AN
PAUL, TRENCH, TRUBNER & Co., Ltd. BROADWAY HOUSE: 68-74 CARTER LANE, LONDON, E.G. 1944
•®w^w^w^w^w^w^w^w^w^w^w^w^\
PHILOSOPHY AND PSYCHOLOGY INTERNATIONAL LIBRARY OF PSYCHOLOGY,
PHILOSOPHY AND SCIENTIFIC METHOD PSYCHOLOGY
A.
GENERAL AND DESCRIPTIVE The Mind and
its
Place
in
Thought and the Brain. Ogden, M.A. 15s.
Nature.
By
By C. D. Broad,
Prof. Henri Pieron.
Principles of Experimental Psychology.
By
The Nature of Laughter.
J.
C. Gregory.
By Mary
The Psychology of Time.
By
Sturt,
Prof.
Litt.D.
20s.
Translated by C. K.
H. Pieron.
12s. 6d.
12s. 6d.
M.A.
9s. 6d.
Telepathy and Clairvoyance. By Rudolf Tischner. Introduction by With nineteen illustrations. 12s. 6d. E. J. Dingwall.
The Psychology of Philosophers.
By Alexander Herzberg, Ph.D.
12s. 6d.
The Mind and Fox.
its
Body: the Foundations of Psychology.
By Charles
12s. 6d.
The Gestalt Theory and Petermann.
the
Illustrated.
Problem of Configuration.
By J. Invention and the Unconscious. 17s. 6d. Dr. H. Stafford Hatfield. Neural Basis of Thought. 12s. 6d. F.R.S.
By Bruno
17s. 6d.
M. Montmasson.
By G. G. Campion and
Sir
G.
Preface by
Elliot Smith,
EMOTION a Study of Unit Response. Marston, C. Daly King, and E. H. Marston. 24s.
Integrative Psychology:
Emotion and H5fifding.
Insanity. 9s. 6d.
By Dr.
S.
Thalbitzer.
By William M.
Preface by Prof. H.
The Measurement of Emotion. By W. Whately Smith, M.A. Introduction by William Brown, M.D., D.Sc. 12s. 6d.
The Laws of Feelhig. M.A. 12s. 6d.
By
The Concentric Method Laignel-Lavastine.
F. Paulhan.
eight illustrations.
The Psychology of Consciousness. Prof.
W. M. Marston.
Translated by C. K. Ogden,
By M.
Diagnosis of Psychoneurotics.
in the
With
With
12s. 6d.
By C. Daly King.
Introduction by
15s.
PERSONALITY
The Neurotic
Personality.
By R. G. Gordon, M.D., D.Sc.
12s. 6d.
of the Nature of Constitution and the Theory Temperament. By E. Kretschmer. Second Edition (revised). With 32 plates. 17s. 6d.
Physique and Character
:
The Psychology of Men of Genius. portraits.
By E. Kretschmer.
With 80
17s. 6d.
The Psychology of Character.
By Dr. A. A. Roback.
24s.
Problems of Personality a Volume of Essays in honour of Morton Prince. Edited by Dr. A. A. Roback. 21s. :
Constitution-Types in Delinquency Practical Applications and Biophysiological Foundations of Kretschmer's Types. By W. A. Willemse. With 32 plates and 19 diagrams. 17s. 6d. :
Conscious Orientation. Studies of Personality Types in Relation to Neurosis and Psychosis by Dr. J. H. Van der Hoop. 17s. 6d.
ANALYSIS
The Practice and Theory of Individual Psychology. (Vienna.)
By Dr. Alfred Adler.
21s.
By C. G. Jung, M.D., LL.D. Translated with a Foreword by H. Godwin Baynes, M.B. Sixth edition, 28s.
Psychological Types.
Contributions to Analytical Psychology. By C. G. Jung, M.D., Translated by H, Godwin Baynes, M.B. 21s.
LL.D.
By
Theoretical Biology.
J.
By
Biological Principles.
von
Uexklill.
21s.
H. Woodger, B.Sc,
J.
24s.
By
Memory.
Translated, with an Prof. Eugenio Rignano. 12s. 6d. Introduction, by Prof. E. W. MacBride, F.R.S.
Biological
ANTHROPOLOGY, SOCIOLOGY, RELIGION, ETC.
By W. H. R.
Psychology and Ethnology.
by Professor G.
Elliot Smith, F.R.S.
Rivers, M.D., F.R.S. 17s. 6d.
Preface
Medicine, Magic and Religion. By W. H. R. Rivers, M.D., F.R.S. Preface by Professor G. ElUot Smith, F.R.S. (Temporarily out of print.)
Psychology and Politics, and Other Essays. By W. H. R. Rivers, M.D., F.R.S. Preface by Prof. G. Elliot Smith. Appreciation of Author by C. S. Myers, F.R.S. 15s. Political Pluralism
A
:
Chuan Hsiao.
Study
in
Modern
Political
Theory.
By Kung
12s. 6d.
History of Chinese Political Thought, during the Early Tsin Period.
With two
By Liang Chi-Chao.
12s. 6d.
portraits.
Individual and the Community : a Historical Analysis of the Motivating Factors of Social Conduct. By Wen Kwei Liao, M.A., Ph.D. 17s. 6d.
The
Crime and Custom 8s.
in
Savage Society.
By Professor
B. Malinowski.
6d.
Sex and Repression
in
Savage Society.
By
Prof.
B.
Mahnowski.
12s. 6d.
The Primitive Mind and Modern Civilization. Aldrich. Introduction by B. Malinowski. Jung.
By Charles Roberts Foreword by C. G.
15s.
Religious Conversion.
The Theory of
By
Prof. Sante de Sanctis.
15s.
By Jeremy Bentham.
Legislation.
Introduction and Notes, by C. K. Ogden.
Edited, with an (Temporarily out of
print.)
Crime, Law, and Social Science. Adler.
Law and
Edited by
J.
Michael and Mortimer
J.
17s. 6d.
By Huntingdon
the Social Sciences.
B.
Cairns.
15s.
PfflLOSOPHY
a System of the Theoretical, Practical, The Philosophy of *' As If " and Religious Fictions of Mankind. By H. Vaihinger. Translated by C. K. Ogden. 28s. :
The Misuse of Mind a Study of Bergson's Attack on Intellectualism. By Karin Stephen. With Preface by Henri Bergson. 8s. 6d. :
Tractatus Logico-Philosophicus. By L. Wittgenstein. German text, with an English Translation en regard, and an Introduction by Bertrand Russell, F.R.S. 12s. 6d.
By C. D. Broad,
Five Types of Ethical Theory.
Litt.D.
17s. 6d.
Speculations : Essays on Humanism and the Philosophy of Art. By T. E. Hulme. Edited by Herbert Read. With a frontispiece and Foreword by Jacob Epstein. 12s. 6d.
The Metaphysical Foundations of Modern Science, with special reference to Man's Relation to Nature. By Edwin A. Burtt, Ph.D. 17s. 6d. Possibility.
By
The Nature of
Scott Buchanan.
By
Life.
12s. 6d.
Prof. R. Rignano.
9s. 6d.
The Foundations of Mathematics, and other Logical Essays. By F. Ramsey, M.A. Edited by R. B. Braithv/aite. Preface by G. Moore. 17s. 6d.
P.
E.
The Theory of Fictions. By Jeremy Bentham. Edited with an Introduction and Notes by C. K. Ogden. With three plates. 15s.
By Professor
Ethical Relativity.
The Nature of Mathematics
:
E. Westermarck.
15s.
a Critical Survey.
By Max
Black.
12s. 6d.
Ideology and Utopia
an Introduction to the Sociology of Knowledge.
:
By Karl Mannheim.
17s. 6d.
Logical Syntax of Language.
An Examination
By
Rudolf Carnap.
Prof.
of Logical Positivism.
By Dr.
Charles Peirce's Empiricism.
By Justus
The Philosophy of
Selected
Biichler.
Peirce.
28s.
Julius Weinberg.
Biichler,
Writings.
Ph.D.
15s.
15s.
Edited
by
Justus
17s. 6d.
SCIENTIFIC
C.
METHOD
METHODOLOGY Thought a Philosophical Analysis of some of its Fundamental Concepts in the Ught of Recent Physical Developments. By C. D. Broad, Litt.D. (Temporarily out of print.)
Scientific
The
Statistical
P.
:
Method
in
Economics and
Sargant Florence, M.A., Ph.D.
Dynamic Social Research. 15s.
Political Science.
By
Prof.
28s.
By John T. Hader and Eduard C. Lindeman.
The Sciences of Kirkpatrick.
Man
in the
Making
:
By
an Orientation Book.
E. A.
17s. 6d.
The Doctrine of Signatures. Scott Buchanan. 9s. 6d.
A
Defence of Theory in Medicine.
By
HISTORY, ETC.
A
Modern Psychology. By Gardner Murphy, With a Supplement by H. Kluver, Ph.D. Fifth edition,
Historical Introduction to
Ph.D. 24s.
Comparative Philosophy. By Paul Masson-Oursel. 12s. 6d. F. G. Crookshank, M.D., F.R.C.P. Philosophy of the Unconscious.
By
E.
Introduction by
von Hartmann.
17s. 6d.
the Cult of Souls and the Belief in Immortality Greeks. By Erwin Rohde. 28s.
Psyche
:
Plato's Theory of Ethics
By R. C. Lodge.
:
The Moral
Criterion
among
the
and the Highest Good.
24s.
By E. Zeller. New Outlines of the History of Greek Philosophy. edition, re-written by Dr. Wilhelm Nestle and translated by L. R. Palmer.
17s. 6d.
: The Theaetetus and the Sophist of Plato. Translated with a Running Commentary, by F. M. Cornford.
Plato's Theory of Knowledge 17s. 6d.
Cosmology The Timaeus of Plato. Translated with a Running Commentary, by F. M. Cornford. 20s.
Plato's
:
Plato and Parmenides. Parmenides' " Way of Truth " and Plato's " Parmenides ". Translated with an Introduction and running commentary by Francis M. Cornford. 15s.
BBADLEY BROTHERS,
lOg KIN08WAV, LONDON, W.C.3
:
AND ASHFORD
KENT
i'?
L 008 967 220 8
^.,
%